Produced by Eve Sobol





THE LONGEST JOURNEY


By E. M. Forster




PART 1 -- CAMBRIDGE


I

"The cow is there," said Ansell, lighting a match and holding it out
over the carpet. No one spoke. He waited till the end of the match fell
off. Then he said again, "She is there, the cow. There, now."

"You have not proved it," said a voice.

"I have proved it to myself."

"I have proved to myself that she isn't," said the voice. "The cow is
not there." Ansell frowned and lit another match.

"She's there for me," he declared. "I don't care whether she's there for
you or not. Whether I'm in Cambridge or Iceland or dead, the cow will be
there."

It was philosophy. They were discussing the existence of objects. Do
they exist only when there is some one to look at them? Or have they a
real existence of their own? It is all very interesting, but at the same
time it is difficult. Hence the cow. She seemed to make things
easier. She was so familiar, so solid, that surely the truths that she
illustrated would in time become familiar and solid also. Is the cow
there or not? This was better than deciding between objectivity and
subjectivity. So at Oxford, just at the same time, one was asking, "What
do our rooms look like in the vac.?"

"Look here, Ansell. I'm there--in the meadow--the cow's there. You're
there--the cow's there. Do you agree so far?" "Well?"

"Well, if you go, the cow stops; but if I go, the cow goes. Then what
will happen if you stop and I go?"

Several voices cried out that this was quibbling.

"I know it is," said the speaker brightly, and silence descended again,
while they tried honestly to think the matter out.

Rickie, on whose carpet the matches were being dropped, did not like to
join in the discussion. It was too difficult for him. He could not even
quibble. If he spoke, he should simply make himself a fool. He preferred
to listen, and to watch the tobacco-smoke stealing out past the
window-seat into the tranquil October air. He could see the court too,
and the college cat teasing the college tortoise, and the kitchen-men
with supper-trays upon their heads. Hot food for one--that must be for
the geographical don, who never came in for Hall; cold food for three,
apparently at half-a-crown a head, for some one he did not know; hot
food, a la carte--obviously for the ladies haunting the next staircase;
cold food for two, at two shillings--going to Ansell's rooms for himself
and Ansell, and as it passed under the lamp he saw that it was meringues
again. Then the bedmakers began to arrive, chatting to each other
pleasantly, and he could hear Ansell's bedmaker say, "Oh dang!" when
she found she had to lay Ansell's tablecloth; for there was not a breath
stirring. The great elms were motionless, and seemed still in the glory
of midsummer, for the darkness hid the yellow blotches on their leaves,
and their outlines were still rounded against the tender sky. Those elms
were Dryads--so Rickie believed or pretended, and the line between the
two is subtler than we admit. At all events they were lady trees, and
had for generations fooled the college statutes by their residence in
the haunts of youth.

But what about the cow? He returned to her with a start, for this would
never do. He also would try to think the matter out. Was she there or
not? The cow. There or not. He strained his eyes into the night.

Either way it was attractive. If she was there, other cows were there
too. The darkness of Europe was dotted with them, and in the far East
their flanks were shining in the rising sun. Great herds of them stood
browsing in pastures where no man came nor need ever come, or plashed
knee-deep by the brink of impassable rivers. And this, moreover, was the
view of Ansell. Yet Tilliard's view had a good deal in it. One might do
worse than follow Tilliard, and suppose the cow not to be there unless
oneself was there to see her. A cowless world, then, stretched round
him on every side. Yet he had only to peep into a field, and, click! it
would at once become radiant with bovine life.

Suddenly he realized that this, again, would never do. As usual, he had
missed the whole point, and was overlaying philosophy with gross and
senseless details. For if the cow was not there, the world and the
fields were not there either. And what would Ansell care about sunlit
flanks or impassable streams? Rickie rebuked his own groveling soul, and
turned his eyes away from the night, which had led him to such absurd
conclusions.

The fire was dancing, and the shadow of Ansell, who stood close up to
it, seemed to dominate the little room. He was still talking, or rather
jerking, and he was still lighting matches and dropping their ends upon
the carpet. Now and then he would make a motion with his feet as if he
were running quickly backward upstairs, and would tread on the edge
of the fender, so that the fire-irons went flying and the buttered-bun
dishes crashed against each other in the hearth. The other philosophers
were crouched in odd shapes on the sofa and table and chairs, and one,
who was a little bored, had crawled to the piano and was timidly trying
the Prelude to Rhinegold with his knee upon the soft pedal. The air was
heavy with good tobacco-smoke and the pleasant warmth of tea, and as
Rickie became more sleepy the events of the day seemed to float one by
one before his acquiescent eyes. In the morning he had read Theocritus,
whom he believed to be the greatest of Greek poets; he had lunched with
a merry don and had tasted Zwieback biscuits; then he had walked with
people he liked, and had walked just long enough; and now his room was
full of other people whom he liked, and when they left he would go and
have supper with Ansell, whom he liked as well as any one. A year ago
he had known none of these joys. He had crept cold and friendless
and ignorant out of a great public school, preparing for a silent and
solitary journey, and praying as a highest favour that he might be left
alone. Cambridge had not answered his prayer. She had taken and soothed
him, and warmed him, and had laughed at him a little, saying that he
must not be so tragic yet awhile, for his boyhood had been but a dusty
corridor that led to the spacious halls of youth. In one year he had
made many friends and learnt much, and he might learn even more if he
could but concentrate his attention on that cow.

The fire had died down, and in the gloom the man by the piano ventured
to ask what would happen if an objective cow had a subjective calf.
Ansell gave an angry sigh, and at that moment there was a tap on the
door.

"Come in!" said Rickie.

The door opened. A tall young woman stood framed in the light that fell
from the passage.

"Ladies!" whispered every-one in great agitation.

"Yes?" he said nervously, limping towards the door (he was rather lame).
"Yes? Please come in. Can I be any good--"

"Wicked boy!" exclaimed the young lady, advancing a gloved finger into
the room. "Wicked, wicked boy!"

He clasped his head with his hands.

"Agnes! Oh how perfectly awful!"

"Wicked, intolerable boy!" She turned on the electric light. The
philosophers were revealed with unpleasing suddenness. "My goodness,
a tea-party! Oh really, Rickie, you are too bad! I say again: wicked,
abominable, intolerable boy! I'll have you horsewhipped. If you
please"--she turned to the symposium, which had now risen to its feet
"If you please, he asks me and my brother for the week-end. We
accept. At the station, no Rickie. We drive to where his old lodgings
were--Trumpery Road or some such name--and he's left them. I'm furious,
and before I can stop my brother, he's paid off the cab and there we are
stranded. I've walked--walked for miles. Pray can you tell me what is to
be done with Rickie?"

"He must indeed be horsewhipped," said Tilliard pleasantly. Then he made
a bolt for the door.

"Tilliard--do stop--let me introduce Miss Pembroke--don't all go!" For
his friends were flying from his visitor like mists before the sun.
"Oh, Agnes, I am so sorry; I've nothing to say. I simply forgot you were
coming, and everything about you."

"Thank you, thank you! And how soon will you remember to ask where
Herbert is?"

"Where is he, then?"

"I shall not tell you."

"But didn't he walk with you?"

"I shall not tell, Rickie. It's part of your punishment. You are not
really sorry yet. I shall punish you again later."

She was quite right. Rickie was not as much upset as he ought to have
been. He was sorry that he had forgotten, and that he had caused his
visitors inconvenience. But he did not feel profoundly degraded, as a
young man should who has acted discourteously to a young lady. Had he
acted discourteously to his bedmaker or his gyp, he would have minded
just as much, which was not polite of him.

"First, I'll go and get food. Do sit down and rest. Oh, let me
introduce--"

Ansell was now the sole remnant of the discussion party. He still stood
on the hearthrug with a burnt match in his hand. Miss Pembroke's arrival
had never disturbed him.

"Let me introduce Mr. Ansell--Miss Pembroke."

There came an awful moment--a moment when he almost regretted that
he had a clever friend. Ansell remained absolutely motionless, moving
neither hand nor head. Such behaviour is so unknown that Miss Pembroke
did not realize what had happened, and kept her own hand stretched out
longer than is maidenly.

"Coming to supper?" asked Ansell in low, grave tones.

"I don't think so," said Rickie helplessly.

Ansell departed without another word.

"Don't mind us," said Miss Pembroke pleasantly. "Why shouldn't you keep
your engagement with your friend? Herbert's finding lodgings,--that's
why he's not here,--and they're sure to be able to give us some dinner.
What jolly rooms you've got!"

"Oh no--not a bit. I say, I am sorry. I am sorry. I am most awfully
sorry."

"What about?"

"Ansell" Then he burst forth. "Ansell isn't a gentleman. His father's a
draper. His uncles are farmers. He's here because he's so clever--just
on account of his brains. Now, sit down. He isn't a gentleman at all."
And he hurried off to order some dinner.

"What a snob the boy is getting!" thought Agnes, a good deal mollified.
It never struck her that those could be the words of affection--that
Rickie would never have spoken them about a person whom he disliked.
Nor did it strike her that Ansell's humble birth scarcely explained
the quality of his rudeness. She was willing to find life full of
trivialities. Six months ago and she might have minded; but now--she
cared not what men might do unto her, for she had her own splendid
lover, who could have knocked all these unhealthy undergraduates into
a cocked-hat. She dared not tell Gerald a word of what had happened: he
might have come up from wherever he was and half killed Ansell. And she
determined not to tell her brother either, for her nature was kindly,
and it pleased her to pass things over.

She took off her gloves, and then she took off her ear-rings and began
to admire them. These ear-rings were a freak of hers--her only freak.
She had always wanted some, and the day Gerald asked her to marry him
she went to a shop and had her ears pierced. In some wonderful way she
knew that it was right. And he had given her the rings--little gold
knobs, copied, the jeweller told them, from something prehistoric and
he had kissed the spots of blood on her handkerchief. Herbert, as usual,
had been shocked.

"I can't help it," she cried, springing up. "I'm not like other girls."
She began to pace about Rickie's room, for she hated to keep quiet.
There was nothing much to see in it. The pictures were not attractive,
nor did they attract her--school groups, Watts' "Sir Percival," a
dog running after a rabbit, a man running after a maid, a cheap brown
Madonna in a cheap green frame--in short, a collection where one
mediocrity was generally cancelled by another. Over the door there hung
a long photograph of a city with waterways, which Agnes, who had never
been to Venice, took to be Venice, but which people who had been to
Stockholm knew to be Stockholm. Rickie's mother, looking rather sweet,
was standing on the mantelpiece. Some more pictures had just arrived
from the framers and were leaning with their faces to the wall, but she
did not bother to turn them round. On the table were dirty teacups, a
flat chocolate cake, and Omar Khayyam, with an Oswego biscuit between
his pages. Also a vase filled with the crimson leaves of autumn. This
made her smile.

Then she saw her host's shoes: he had left them lying on the sofa.
Rickie was slightly deformed, and so the shoes were not the same size,
and one of them had a thick heel to help him towards an even walk.
"Ugh!" she exclaimed, and removed them gingerly to the bedroom. There
she saw other shoes and boots and pumps, a whole row of them, all
deformed. "Ugh! Poor boy! It is too bad. Why shouldn't he be like other
people? This hereditary business is too awful." She shut the door with
a sigh. Then she recalled the perfect form of Gerald, his athletic walk,
the poise of his shoulders, his arms stretched forward to receive her.
Gradually she was comforted.

"I beg your pardon, miss, but might I ask how many to lay?" It was the
bedmaker, Mrs. Aberdeen.

"Three, I think," said Agnes, smiling pleasantly. "Mr. Elliot'll be back
in a minute. He has gone to order dinner.

"Thank you, miss."

"Plenty of teacups to wash up!"

"But teacups is easy washing, particularly Mr. Elliot's."

"Why are his so easy?"

"Because no nasty corners in them to hold the dirt. Mr. Anderson--he's
below-has crinkly noctagons, and one wouldn't believe the difference.
It was I bought these for Mr. Elliot. His one thought is to save one
trouble. I never seed such a thoughtful gentleman. The world, I say,
will be the better for him." She took the teacups into the gyp room, and
then returned with the tablecloth, and added, "if he's spared."

"I'm afraid he isn't strong," said Agnes.

"Oh, miss, his nose! I don't know what he'd say if he knew I mentioned
his nose, but really I must speak to someone, and he has neither father
nor mother. His nose! It poured twice with blood in the Long."

"Yes?"

"It's a thing that ought to be known. I assure you, that little room!...
And in any case, Mr. Elliot's a gentleman that can ill afford to lose
it. Luckily his friends were up; and I always say they're more like
brothers than anything else."

"Nice for him. He has no real brothers."

"Oh, Mr. Hornblower, he is a merry gentleman, and Mr. Tilliard too!
And Mr. Elliot himself likes his romp at times. Why, it's the merriest
staircase in the buildings! Last night the bedmaker from W said to
me,'What are you doing to my gentlemen? Here's Mr. Ansell come back 'ot
with his collar flopping.' I said, 'And a good thing.' Some bedders keep
their gentlemen just so; but surely, miss, the world being what it is,
the longer one is able to laugh in it the better."

Bedmakers have to be comic and dishonest. It is expected of them. In a
picture of university life it is their only function. So when we meet
one who has the face of a lady, and feelings of which a lady might be
proud, we pass her by.

"Yes?" said Miss Pembroke, and then their talk was stopped by the
arrival of her brother.

"It is too bad!" he exclaimed. "It is really too bad."

"Now, Bertie boy, Bertie boy! I'll have no peevishness."

"I am not peevish, Agnes, but I have a full right to be. Pray, why did
he not meet us? Why did he not provide rooms? And pray, why did you
leave me to do all the settling? All the lodgings I knew are full, and
our bedrooms look into a mews. I cannot help it. And then--look here!
It really is too bad." He held up his foot like a wounded dog. It was
dripping with water.

"Oho! This explains the peevishness. Off with it at once. It'll be
another of your colds."

"I really think I had better." He sat down by the fire and daintily
unlaced his boot. "I notice a great change in university tone. I can
never remember swaggering three abreast along the pavement and charging
inoffensive visitors into a gutter when I was an undergraduate. One of
the men, too, wore an Eton tie. But the others, I should say, came from
very queer schools, if they came from any schools at all."

Mr. Pembroke was nearly twenty years older than his sister, and had
never been as handsome. But he was not at all the person to knock into
a gutter, for though not in orders, he had the air of being on the verge
of them, and his features, as well as his clothes, had the clerical
cut. In his presence conversation became pure and colourless and full
of understatements, and--just as if he was a real clergyman--neither
men nor boys ever forgot that he was there. He had observed this, and it
pleased him very much. His conscience permitted him to enter the Church
whenever his profession, which was the scholastic, should demand it.

"No gutter in the world's as wet as this," said Agnes, who had peeled
off her brother's sock, and was now toasting it at the embers on a pair
of tongs.

"Surely you know the running water by the edge of the Trumpington road?
It's turned on occasionally to clear away the refuse--a most primitive
idea. When I was up we had a joke about it, and called it the 'Pem.'"

"How complimentary!"

"You foolish girl,--not after me, of course. We called it the 'Pem'
because it is close to Pembroke College. I remember--" He smiled a
little, and twiddled his toes. Then he remembered the bedmaker, and
said, "My sock is now dry. My sock, please."

"Your sock is sopping. No, you don't!" She twitched the tongs away from
him. Mrs. Aberdeen, without speaking, fetched a pair of Rickie's socks
and a pair of Rickie's shoes.

"Thank you; ah, thank you. I am sure Mr. Elliot would allow it."

Then he said in French to his sister, "Has there been the slightest sign
of Frederick?"

"Now, do call him Rickie, and talk English. I found him here. He had
forgotten about us, and was very sorry. Now he's gone to get some
dinner, and I can't think why he isn't back."

Mrs. Aberdeen left them.

"He wants pulling up sharply. There is nothing original in
absent-mindedness. True originality lies elsewhere. Really, the lower
classes have no nous. However can I wear such deformities?" For he had
been madly trying to cram a right-hand foot into a left-hand shoe.

"Don't!" said Agnes hastily. "Don't touch the poor fellow's things." The
sight of the smart, stubby patent leather made her almost feel faint.
She had known Rickie for many years, but it seemed so dreadful and so
different now that he was a man. It was her first great contact with the
abnormal, and unknown fibres of her being rose in revolt against it. She
frowned when she heard his uneven tread upon the stairs.

"Agnes--before he arrives--you ought never to have left me and gone
to his rooms alone. A most elementary transgression. Imagine the
unpleasantness if you had found him with friends. If Gerald--"

Rickie by now had got into a fluster. At the kitchens he had lost his
head, and when his turn came--he had had to wait--he had yielded his
place to those behind, saying that he didn't matter. And he had wasted
more precious time buying bananas, though he knew that the Pembrokes
were not partial to fruit. Amid much tardy and chaotic hospitality
the meal got under way. All the spoons and forks were anyhow, for Mrs.
Aberdeen's virtues were not practical. The fish seemed never to have
been alive, the meat had no kick, and the cork of the college
claret slid forth silently, as if ashamed of the contents. Agnes was
particularly pleasant. But her brother could not recover himself. He
still remembered their desolate arrival, and he could feel the waters of
the Pem eating into his instep.

"Rickie," cried the lady, "are you aware that you haven't congratulated
me on my engagement?"

Rickie laughed nervously, and said, "Why no! No more I have."

"Say something pretty, then."

"I hope you'll be very happy," he mumbled. "But I don't know anything
about marriage."

"Oh, you awful boy! Herbert, isn't he just the same? But you do know
something about Gerald, so don't be so chilly and cautious. I've just
realized, looking at those groups, that you must have been at school
together. Did you come much across him?"

"Very little," he answered, and sounded shy. He got up hastily, and
began to muddle with the coffee.

"But he was in the same house. Surely that's a house group?"

"He was a prefect." He made his coffee on the simple system. One had a
brown pot, into which the boiling stuff was poured. Just before serving
one put in a drop of cold water, and the idea was that the grounds fell
to the bottom.

"Wasn't he a kind of athletic marvel? Couldn't he knock any boy or
master down?"

"Yes."

"If he had wanted to," said Mr. Pembroke, who had not spoken for some
time.

"If he had wanted to," echoed Rickie. "I do hope, Agnes, you'll be most
awfully happy. I don't know anything about the army, but I should think
it must be most awfully interesting."

Mr. Pembroke laughed faintly.

"Yes, Rickie. The army is a most interesting profession,--the profession
of Wellington and Marlborough and Lord Roberts; a most interesting
profession, as you observe. A profession that may mean death--death,
rather than dishonour."

"That's nice," said Rickie, speaking to himself. "Any profession
may mean dishonour, but one isn't allowed to die instead. The army's
different. If a soldier makes a mess, it's thought rather decent of
him, isn't it, if he blows out his brains? In the other professions it
somehow seems cowardly."

"I am not competent to pronounce," said Mr. Pembroke, who was not
accustomed to have his schoolroom satire commented on. "I merely know
that the army is the finest profession in the world. Which reminds me,
Rickie--have you been thinking about yours?"

"No."

"Not at all?"

"No."

"Now, Herbert, don't bother him. Have another meringue."

"But, Rickie, my dear boy, you're twenty. It's time you thought. The
Tripos is the beginning of life, not the end. In less than two years you
will have got your B.A. What are you going to do with it?"

"I don't know."

"You're M.A., aren't you?" asked Agnes; but her brother proceeded--

"I have seen so many promising, brilliant lives wrecked simply on
account of this--not settling soon enough. My dear boy, you must think.
Consult your tastes if possible--but think. You have not a moment to
lose. The Bar, like your father?"

"Oh, I wouldn't like that at all."

"I don't mention the Church."

"Oh, Rickie, do be a clergyman!" said Miss Pembroke. "You'd be simply
killing in a wide-awake."

He looked at his guests hopelessly. Their kindness and competence
overwhelmed him. "I wish I could talk to them as I talk to myself," he
thought. "I'm not such an ass when I talk to myself. I don't believe,
for instance, that quite all I thought about the cow was rot." Aloud he
said, "I've sometimes wondered about writing."

"Writing?" said Mr. Pembroke, with the tone of one who gives everything
its trial. "Well, what about writing? What kind of writing?"

"I rather like,"--he suppressed something in his throat,--"I rather like
trying to write little stories."

"Why, I made sure it was poetry!" said Agnes. "You're just the boy for
poetry."

"I had no idea you wrote. Would you let me see something? Then I could
judge."

The author shook his head. "I don't show it to any one. It isn't
anything. I just try because it amuses me."

"What is it about?"

"Silly nonsense."

"Are you ever going to show it to any one?"

"I don't think so."

Mr. Pembroke did not reply, firstly, because the meringue he was eating
was, after all, Rickie's; secondly, because it was gluey and stuck his
jaws together. Agnes observed that the writing was really a very good
idea: there was Rickie's aunt,--she could push him.

"Aunt Emily never pushes any one; she says they always rebound and crush
her."

"I only had the pleasure of seeing your aunt once. I should have thought
her a quite uncrushable person. But she would be sure to help you."

"I couldn't show her anything. She'd think them even sillier than they
are."

"Always running yourself down! There speaks the artist!"

"I'm not modest," he said anxiously. "I just know they're bad."

Mr. Pembroke's teeth were clear of meringue, and he could refrain no
longer. "My dear Rickie, your father and mother are dead, and you often
say your aunt takes no interest in you. Therefore your life depends on
yourself. Think it over carefully, but settle, and having once settled,
stick. If you think that this writing is practicable, and that you
could make your living by it--that you could, if needs be, support a
wife--then by all means write. But you must work. Work and drudge. Begin
at the bottom of the ladder and work upwards."

Rickie's head drooped. Any metaphor silenced him. He never thought of
replying that art is not a ladder--with a curate, as it were, on the
first rung, a rector on the second, and a bishop, still nearer heaven,
at the top. He never retorted that the artist is not a bricklayer at
all, but a horseman, whose business it is to catch Pegasus at once,
not to practise for him by mounting tamer colts. This is hard, hot, and
generally ungraceful work, but it is not drudgery. For drudgery is not
art, and cannot lead to it.

"Of course I don't really think about writing," he said, as he poured
the cold water into the coffee. "Even if my things ever were decent, I
don't think the magazines would take them, and the magazines are one's
only chance. I read somewhere, too, that Marie Corelli's about the only
person who makes a thing out of literature. I'm certain it wouldn't pay
me."

"I never mentioned the word 'pay,'" said Mr. Pembroke uneasily.

"You must not consider money. There are ideals too."

"I have no ideals."

"Rickie!" she exclaimed. "Horrible boy!"

"No, Agnes, I have no ideals." Then he got very red, for it was a phrase
he had caught from Ansell, and he could not remember what came next.

"The person who has no ideals," she exclaimed, "is to be pitied."

"I think so too," said Mr. Pembroke, sipping his coffee. "Life without
an ideal would be like the sky without the sun."

Rickie looked towards the night, wherein there now twinkled innumerable
stars--gods and heroes, virgins and brides, to whom the Greeks have
given their names.

"Life without an ideal--" repeated Mr. Pembroke, and then stopped, for
his mouth was full of coffee grounds. The same affliction had overtaken
Agnes. After a little jocose laughter they departed to their lodgings,
and Rickie, having seen them as far as the porter's lodge, hurried,
singing as he went, to Ansell's room, burst open the door, and said,
"Look here! Whatever do you mean by it?"

"By what?" Ansell was sitting alone with a piece of paper in front of
him. On it was a diagram--a circle inside a square, inside which was
again a square.

"By being so rude. You're no gentleman, and I told her so." He slammed
him on the head with a sofa cushion. "I'm certain one ought to be
polite, even to people who aren't saved." ("Not saved" was a phrase they
applied just then to those whom they did not like or intimately
know.) "And I believe she is saved. I never knew any one so always
good-tempered and kind. She's been kind to me ever since I knew her. I
wish you'd heard her trying to stop her brother: you'd have certainly
come round. Not but what he was only being nice as well. But she is
really nice. And I thought she came into the room so beautifully. Do you
know--oh, of course, you despise music--but Anderson was playing Wagner,
and he'd just got to the part where they sing

    'Rheingold!
    'Rheingold!

and the sun strikes into the waters, and the music, which up to then has
so often been in E flat--"

"Goes into D sharp. I have not understood a single word, partly because
you talk as if your mouth was full of plums, partly because I don't know
whom you're talking about." "Miss Pembroke--whom you saw."

"I saw no one."

"Who came in?"

"No one came in."

"You're an ass!" shrieked Rickie. "She came in. You saw her come in. She
and her brother have been to dinner."

"You only think so. They were not really there."

"But they stop till Monday."

"You only think that they are stopping."

"But--oh, look here, shut up! The girl like an empress--"

"I saw no empress, nor any girl, nor have you seen them."

"Ansell, don't rag."

"Elliot, I never rag, and you know it. She was not really there."

There was a moment's silence. Then Rickie exclaimed, "I've got you. You
say--or was it Tilliard?--no, YOU say that the cow's there. Well--there
these people are, then. Got you. Yah!"

"Did it never strike you that phenomena may be of two kinds: ONE, those
which have a real existence, such as the cow; TWO, those which are
the subjective product of a diseased imagination, and which, to our
destruction, we invest with the semblance of reality? If this never
struck you, let it strike you now."

Rickie spoke again, but received no answer. He paced a little up and
down the sombre roam. Then he sat on the edge of the table and watched
his clever friend draw within the square a circle, and within the
circle a square, and inside that another circle, and inside that another
square.

"Why will you do that?"

No answer.

"Are they real?"

"The inside one is--the one in the middle of everything, that there's
never room enough to draw."



II

A little this side of Madingley, to the left of the road, there is a
secluded dell, paved with grass and planted with fir-trees. It could not
have been worth a visit twenty years ago, for then it was only a scar
of chalk, and it is not worth a visit at the present day, for the trees
have grown too thick and choked it. But when Rickie was up, it chanced
to be the brief season of its romance, a season as brief for a chalk-pit
as a man--its divine interval between the bareness of boyhood and the
stuffiness of age. Rickie had discovered it in his second term, when the
January snows had melted and left fiords and lagoons of clearest water
between the inequalities of the floor. The place looked as big as
Switzerland or Norway--as indeed for the moment it was--and he came upon
it at a time when his life too was beginning to expand. Accordingly the
dell became for him a kind of church--a church where indeed you could
do anything you liked, but where anything you did would be transfigured.
Like the ancient Greeks, he could even laugh at his holy place and
leave it no less holy. He chatted gaily about it, and about the pleasant
thoughts with which it inspired him; he took his friends there; he even
took people whom he did not like. "Procul este, profani!" exclaimed a
delighted aesthete on being introduced to it. But this was never to be
the attitude of Rickie. He did not love the vulgar herd, but he knew
that his own vulgarity would be greater if he forbade it ingress, and
that it was not by preciosity that he would attain to the intimate
spirit of the dell. Indeed, if he had agreed with the aesthete, he
would possibly not have introduced him. If the dell was to bear any
inscription, he would have liked it to be "This way to Heaven," painted
on a sign-post by the high-road, and he did not realize till later years
that the number of visitors would not thereby have sensibly increased.

On the blessed Monday that the Pembrokes left, he walked out here with
three friends. It was a day when the sky seemed enormous. One cloud,
as large as a continent, was voyaging near the sun, whilst other clouds
seemed anchored to the horizon, too lazy or too happy to move. The sky
itself was of the palest blue, paling to white where it approached the
earth; and the earth, brown, wet, and odorous, was engaged beneath it on
its yearly duty of decay. Rickie was open to the complexities of autumn;
he felt extremely tiny--extremely tiny and extremely important; and
perhaps the combination is as fair as any that exists. He hoped that all
his life he would never be peevish or unkind.

"Elliot is in a dangerous state," said Ansell. They had reached the
dell, and had stood for some time in silence, each leaning against a
tree. It was too wet to sit down.

"How's that?" asked Rickie, who had not known he was in any state at
all. He shut up Keats, whom he thought he had been reading, and slipped
him back into his coat-pocket. Scarcely ever was he without a book.

"He's trying to like people."

"Then he's done for," said Widdrington. "He's dead."

"He's trying to like Hornblower."

The others gave shrill agonized cries.

"He wants to bind the college together. He wants to link us to the beefy
set."

"I do like Hornblower," he protested. "I don't try."

"And Hornblower tries to like you."

"That part doesn't matter."

"But he does try to like you. He tries not to despise you. It is
altogether a most public-spirited affair."

"Tilliard started them," said Widdrington. "Tilliard thinks it such a
pity the college should be split into sets."

"Oh, Tilliard!" said Ansell, with much irritation. "But what can you
expect from a person who's eternally beautiful? The other night we had
been discussing a long time, and suddenly the light was turned on. Every
one else looked a sight, as they ought. But there was Tilliard, sitting
neatly on a little chair, like an undersized god, with not a curl
crooked. I should say he will get into the Foreign Office."

"Why are most of us so ugly?" laughed Rickie.

"It's merely a sign of our salvation--merely another sign that the
college is split."

"The college isn't split," cried Rickie, who got excited on this subject
with unfailing regularity. "The college is, and has been, and always
will be, one. What you call the beefy set aren't a set at all. They're
just the rowing people, and naturally they chiefly see each other; but
they're always nice to me or to any one. Of course, they think us rather
asses, but it's quite in a pleasant way."

"That's my whole objection," said Ansell. "What right have they to
think us asses in a pleasant way? Why don't they hate us? What right has
Hornblower to smack me on the back when I've been rude to him?"

"Well, what right have you to be rude to him?"

"Because I hate him. You think it is so splendid to hate no one. I tell
you it is a crime. You want to love every one equally, and that's worse
than impossible it's wrong. When you denounce sets, you're really trying
to destroy friendship."

"I maintain," said Rickie--it was a verb he clung to, in the hope that
it would lend stability to what followed--"I maintain that one can like
many more people than one supposes."

"And I maintain that you hate many more people than you pretend."

"I hate no one," he exclaimed with extraordinary vehemence, and the dell
re-echoed that it hated no one.

"We are obliged to believe you," said Widdrington, smiling a little "but
we are sorry about it."

"Not even your father?" asked Ansell.

Rickie was silent.

"Not even your father?"

The cloud above extended a great promontory across the sun. It only lay
there for a moment, yet that was enough to summon the lurking coldness
from the earth.

"Does he hate his father?" said Widdrington, who had not known. "Oh,
good!"

"But his father's dead. He will say it doesn't count."

"Still, it's something. Do you hate yours?"

Ansell did not reply. Rickie said: "I say, I wonder whether one ought to
talk like this?"

"About hating dead people?"

"Yes--"

"Did you hate your mother?" asked Widdrington.

Rickie turned crimson.

"I don't see Hornblower's such a rotter," remarked the other man, whose
name was James.

"James, you are diplomatic," said Ansell. "You are trying to tide over
an awkward moment. You can go."

Widdrington was crimson too. In his wish to be sprightly he had used
words without thinking of their meanings. Suddenly he realized that
"father" and "mother" really meant father and mother--people whom he had
himself at home. He was very uncomfortable, and thought Rickie had been
rather queer. He too tried to revert to Hornblower, but Ansell would not
let him. The sun came out, and struck on the white ramparts of the dell.
Rickie looked straight at it. Then he said abruptly--

"I think I want to talk."

"I think you do," replied Ansell.

"Shouldn't I be rather a fool if I went through Cambridge without
talking? It's said never to come so easy again. All the people are dead
too. I can't see why I shouldn't tell you most things about my birth and
parentage and education."

"Talk away. If you bore us, we have books."

With this invitation Rickie began to relate his history. The reader who
has no book will be obliged to listen to it.

Some people spend their lives in a suburb, and not for any urgent
reason. This had been the fate of Rickie. He had opened his eyes
to filmy heavens, and taken his first walk on asphalt. He had seen
civilization as a row of semi-detached villas, and society as a state in
which men do not know the men who live next door. He had himself become
part of the grey monotony that surrounds all cities. There was no
necessity for this--it was only rather convenient to his father.

Mr. Elliot was a barrister. In appearance he resembled his son, being
weakly and lame, with hollow little cheeks, a broad white band of
forehead, and stiff impoverished hair. His voice, which he did not
transmit, was very suave, with a fine command of cynical intonation.
By altering it ever so little he could make people wince, especially if
they were simple or poor. Nor did he transmit his eyes. Their peculiar
flatness, as if the soul looked through dirty window-panes, the
unkindness of them, the cowardice, the fear in them, were to trouble the
world no longer.

He married a girl whose voice was beautiful. There was no caress in
it yet all who heard it were soothed, as though the world held some
unexpected blessing. She called to her dogs one night over invisible
waters, and he, a tourist up on the bridge, thought "that is
extraordinarily adequate." In time he discovered that her figure, face,
and thoughts were adequate also, and as she was not impossible socially,
he married her. "I have taken a plunge," he told his family. The family,
hostile at first, had not a word to say when the woman was introduced
to them; and his sister declared that the plunge had been taken from the
opposite bank.

Things only went right for a little time. Though beautiful without and
within, Mrs. Elliot had not the gift of making her home beautiful; and
one day, when she bought a carpet for the dining-room that clashed, he
laughed gently, said he "really couldn't," and departed. Departure is
perhaps too strong a word. In Mrs. Elliot's mouth it became, "My husband
has to sleep more in town." He often came down to see them, nearly
always unexpectedly, and occasionally they went to see him. "Father's
house," as Rickie called it, only had three rooms, but these were full
of books and pictures and flowers; and the flowers, instead of being
squashed down into the vases as they were in mummy's house, rose
gracefully from frames of lead which lay coiled at the bottom, as
doubtless the sea serpent has to lie, coiled at the bottom of the sea.
Once he was let to lift a frame out--only once, for he dropped some
water on a creton. "I think he's going to have taste," said Mr. Elliot
languidly. "It is quite possible," his wife replied. She had not taken
off her hat and gloves, nor even pulled up her veil. Mr. Elliot laughed,
and soon afterwards another lady came in, and they--went away.

"Why does father always laugh?" asked Rickie in the evening when he and
his mother were sitting in the nursery.

"It is a way of your father's."

"Why does he always laugh at me? Am I so funny?" Then after a pause,
"You have no sense of humour, have you, mummy?"

Mrs. Elliot, who was raising a thread of cotton to her lips, held it
suspended in amazement.

"You told him so this afternoon. But I have seen you laugh." He nodded
wisely. "I have seen you laugh ever so often. One day you were laughing
alone all down in the sweet peas."

"Was I?"

"Yes. Were you laughing at me?"

"I was not thinking about you. Cotton, please--a reel of No. 50 white
from my chest of drawers. Left hand drawer. Now which is your left
hand?"

"The side my pocket is."

"And if you had no pocket?"

"The side my bad foot is."

"I meant you to say, 'the side my heart is,'" said Mrs. Elliot, holding
up the duster between them. "Most of us--I mean all of us--can feel on
one side a little watch, that never stops ticking. So even if you had no
bad foot you would still know which is the left. No. 50 white, please.
No; I'll get it myself." For she had remembered that the dark passage
frightened him.

These were the outlines. Rickie filled them in with the slowness and the
accuracy of a child. He was never told anything, but he discovered for
himself that his father and mother did not love each other, and that his
mother was lovable. He discovered that Mr. Elliot had dubbed him Rickie
because he was rickety, that he took pleasure in alluding to his son's
deformity, and was sorry that it was not more serious than his own. Mr.
Elliot had not one scrap of genius. He gathered the pictures and the
books and the flower-supports mechanically, not in any impulse of love.
He passed for a cultured man because he knew how to select, and he
passed for an unconventional man because he did not select quite like
other people. In reality he never did or said or thought one single
thing that had the slightest beauty or value. And in time Rickie
discovered this as well.

The boy grew up in great loneliness. He worshipped his mother, and she
was fond of him. But she was dignified and reticent, and pathos, like
tattle, was disgusting to her. She was afraid of intimacy, in case it
led to confidences and tears, and so all her life she held her son at a
little distance. Her kindness and unselfishness knew no limits, but if
he tried to be dramatic and thank her, she told him not to be a little
goose. And so the only person he came to know at all was himself.
He would play Halma against himself. He would conduct solitary
conversations, in which one part of him asked and another part answered.
It was an exciting game, and concluded with the formula: "Good-bye.
Thank you. I am glad to have met you. I hope before long we shall enjoy
another chat." And then perhaps he would sob for loneliness, for he
would see real people--real brothers, real friends--doing in warm life
the things he had pretended. "Shall I ever have a friend?" he demanded
at the age of twelve. "I don't see how. They walk too fast. And a
brother I shall never have."

("No loss," interrupted Widdrington.

"But I shall never have one, and so I quite want one, even now.")

When he was thirteen Mr. Elliot entered on his illness. The pretty rooms
in town would not do for an invalid, and so he came back to his home.
One of the first consequences was that Rickie was sent to a public
school. Mrs. Elliot did what she could, but she had no hold whatever
over her husband.

"He worries me," he declared. "He's a joke of which I have got tired."

"Would it be possible to send him to a private tutor's?"

"No," said Mr. Elliot, who had all the money. "Coddling."

"I agree that boys ought to rough it; but when a boy is lame and very
delicate, he roughs it sufficiently if he leaves home. Rickie can't play
games. He doesn't make friends. He isn't brilliant. Thinking it over, I
feel that as it's like this, we can't ever hope to give him the ordinary
education. Perhaps you could think it over too." No.

"I am sure that things are best for him as they are. The day-school
knocks quite as many corners off him as he can stand. He hates it, but
it is good for him. A public school will not be good for him. It is too
rough. Instead of getting manly and hard, he will--"

"My head, please."

Rickie departed in a state of bewildered misery, which was scarcely ever
to grow clearer.

Each holiday he found his father more irritable, and a little weaker.
Mrs. Elliot was quickly growing old. She had to manage the servants, to
hush the neighbouring children, to answer the correspondence, to paper
and re-paper the rooms--and all for the sake of a man whom she did not
like, and who did not conceal his dislike for her. One day she found
Rickie tearful, and said rather crossly, "Well, what is it this time?"

He replied, "Oh, mummy, I've seen your wrinkles your grey hair--I'm
unhappy."

Sudden tenderness overcame her, and she cried, "My darling, what does it
matter? Whatever does it matter now?"

He had never known her so emotional. Yet even better did he remember
another incident. Hearing high voices from his father's room, he went
upstairs in the hope that the sound of his tread might stop them. Mrs.
Elliot burst open the door, and seeing him, exclaimed, "My dear! If you
please, he's hit me." She tried to laugh it off, but a few hours later
he saw the bruise which the stick of the invalid had raised upon his
mother's hand.

God alone knows how far we are in the grip of our bodies. He alone can
judge how far the cruelty of Mr. Elliot was the outcome of extenuating
circumstances. But Mrs. Elliot could accurately judge of its extent.

At last he died. Rickie was now fifteen, and got off a whole week's
school for the funeral. His mother was rather strange. She was much
happier, she looked younger, and her mourning was as unobtrusive as
convention permitted. All this he had expected. But she seemed to
be watching him, and to be extremely anxious for his opinion on any,
subject--more especially on his father. Why? At last he saw that she was
trying to establish confidence between them. But confidence cannot be
established in a moment. They were both shy. The habit of years was
upon them, and they alluded to the death of Mr. Elliot as an irreparable
loss.

"Now that your father has gone, things will be very different."

"Shall we be poorer, mother?" No.

"Oh!"

"But naturally things will be very different."

"Yes, naturally."

"For instance, your poor father liked being near London, but I almost
think we might move. Would you like that?"

"Of course, mummy." He looked down at the ground. He was not accustomed
to being consulted, and it bewildered him.

"Perhaps you might like quite a different life better?"

He giggled.

"It's a little difficult for me," said Mrs. Elliot, pacing vigorously up
and down the room, and more and more did her black dress seem a mockery.
"In some ways you ought to be consulted: nearly all the money is left to
you, as you must hear some time or other. But in other ways you're only
a boy. What am I to do?"

"I don't know," he replied, appearing more helpless and unhelpful than
he really was.

"For instance, would you like me to arrange things exactly as I like?"

"Oh do!" he exclaimed, thinking this a most brilliant suggestion.

"The very nicest thing of all." And he added, in his half-pedantic,
half-pleasing way, "I shall be as wax in your hands, mamma."

She smiled. "Very well, darling. You shall be." And she pressed him
lovingly, as though she would mould him into something beautiful.

For the next few days great preparations were in the air. She went to
see his father's sister, the gifted and vivacious Aunt Emily. They were
to live in the country--somewhere right in the country, with grass and
trees up to the door, and birds singing everywhere, and a tutor. For he
was not to go back to school. Unbelievable! He was never to go back to
school, and the head-master had written saying that he regretted the
step, but that possibly it was a wise one.

It was raw weather, and Mrs. Elliot watched over him with ceaseless
tenderness. It seemed as if she could not do too much to shield him and
to draw him nearer to her.

"Put on your greatcoat, dearest," she said to him.

"I don't think I want it," answered Rickie, remembering that he was now
fifteen.

"The wind is bitter. You ought to put it on."

"But it's so heavy."

"Do put it on, dear."

He was not very often irritable or rude, but he answered, "Oh, I shan't
catch cold. I do wish you wouldn't keep on bothering." He did not
catch cold, but while he was out his mother died. She only survived
her husband eleven days, a coincidence which was recorded on their
tombstone.

Such, in substance, was the story which Rickie told his friends as
they stood together in the shelter of the dell. The green bank at the
entrance hid the road and the world, and now, as in spring, they could
see nothing but snow-white ramparts and the evergreen foliage of the
firs. Only from time to time would a beech leaf flutter in from the
woods above, to comment on the waning year, and the warmth and radiance
of the sun would vanish behind a passing cloud.

About the greatcoat he did not tell them, for he could not have spoken
of it without tears.



III

Mr. Ansell, a provincial draper of moderate prosperity, ought by rights
to have been classed not with the cow, but with those phenomena that are
not really there. But his son, with pardonable illogicality, excepted
him. He never suspected that his father might be the subjective product
of a diseased imagination. From his earliest years he had taken him for
granted, as a most undeniable and lovable fact. To be born one thing and
grow up another--Ansell had accomplished this without weakening one
of the ties that bound him to his home. The rooms above the shop still
seemed as comfortable, the garden behind it as gracious, as they
had seemed fifteen years before, when he would sit behind Miss
Appleblossom's central throne, and she, like some allegorical figure,
would send the change and receipted bills spinning away from her in
little boxwood balls. At first the young man had attributed these happy
relations to his own tact. But in time he perceived that the tact was
all on the side of his father. Mr. Ansell was not merely a man of some
education; he had what no education can bring--the power of detecting
what is important. Like many fathers, he had spared no expense over his
boy,--he had borrowed money to start him at a rapacious and fashionable
private school; he had sent him to tutors; he had sent him to Cambridge.
But he knew that all this was not the important thing. The important
thing was freedom. The boy must use his education as he chose, and if he
paid his father back it would certainly not be in his own coin. So when
Stewart said, "At Cambridge, can I read for the Moral Science Tripos?"
Mr. Ansell had only replied, "This philosophy--do you say that it lies
behind everything?"

"Yes, I think so. It tries to discover what is good and true."

"Then, my boy, you had better read as much of it as you can."

And a year later: "I'd like to take up this philosophy seriously, but I
don't feel justified."

"Why not?"

"Because it brings in no return. I think I'm a great philosopher, but
then all philosophers think that, though they don't dare to say so. But,
however great I am. I shan't earn money. Perhaps I shan't ever be able
to keep myself. I shan't even get a good social position. You've only
to say one word, and I'll work for the Civil Service. I'm good enough to
get in high."

Mr. Ansell liked money and social position. But he knew that there is
a more important thing, and replied, "You must take up this philosophy
seriously, I think."

"Another thing--there are the girls."

"There is enough money now to get Mary and Maud as good husbands as they
deserve." And Mary and Maud took the same view. It was in this plebeian
household that Rickie spent part of the Christmas vacation. His own
home, such as it was, was with the Silts, needy cousins of his father's,
and combined to a peculiar degree the restrictions of hospitality with
the discomforts of a boarding-house. Such pleasure as he had outside
Cambridge was in the homes of his friends, and it was a particular joy
and honour to visit Ansell, who, though as free from social snobbishness
as most of us will ever manage to be, was rather careful when he drove
up to the facade of his shop.

"I like our new lettering," he said thoughtfully. The words "Stewart
Ansell" were repeated again and again along the High Street--curly gold
letters that seemed to float in tanks of glazed chocolate.

"Rather!" said Rickie. But he wondered whether one of the bonds that
kept the Ansell family united might not be their complete absence of
taste--a surer bond by far than the identity of it. And he wondered this
again when he sat at tea opposite a long row of crayons--Stewart as a
baby, Stewart as a small boy with large feet, Stewart as a larger boy
with smaller feet, Mary reading a book whose leaves were as thick as
eiderdowns. And yet again did he wonder it when he woke with a gasp in
the night to find a harp in luminous paint throbbing and glowering at
him from the adjacent wall. "Watch and pray" was written on the harp,
and until Rickie hung a towel over it the exhortation was partially
successful.

It was a very happy visit. Miss Appleblosssom--who now acted as
housekeeper--had met him before, during her never-forgotten expedition
to Cambridge, and her admiration of University life was as shrill and
as genuine now as it had been then. The girls at first were a little
aggressive, for on his arrival he had been tired, and Maud had taken it
for haughtiness, and said he was looking down on them. But this passed.
They did not fall in love with him, nor he with them, but a morning was
spent very pleasantly in snow-balling in the back garden. Ansell was
rather different to what he was in Cambridge, but to Rickie not less
attractive. And there was a curious charm in the hum of the shop, which
swelled into a roar if one opened the partition door on a market-day.

"Listen to your money!" said Rickie. "I wish I could hear mine. I wish
my money was alive."

"I don't understand."

"Mine's dead money. It's come to me through about six dead
people--silently."

"Getting a little smaller and a little more respectable each time, on
account of the death-duties."

"It needed to get respectable."

"Why? Did your people, too, once keep a shop?"

"Oh, not as bad as that! They only swindled. About a hundred years ago
an Elliot did something shady and founded the fortunes of our house."

"I never knew any one so relentless to his ancestors. You make up for
your soapiness towards the living."

"You'd be relentless if you'd heard the Silts, as I have, talk about 'a
fortune, small perhaps, but unsoiled by trade!' Of course Aunt Emily is
rather different. Oh, goodness me! I've forgotten my aunt. She lives not
so far. I shall have to call on her."

Accordingly he wrote to Mrs. Failing, and said he should like to pay his
respects. He told her about the Ansells, and so worded the letter that
she might reasonably have sent an invitation to his friend.

She replied that she was looking forward to their tete-a-tete.

"You mustn't go round by the trains," said Mr. Ansell. "It means
changing at Salisbury. By the road it's no great way. Stewart shall
drive you over Salisbury Plain, and fetch you too."

"There's too much snow," said Ansell.

"Then the girls shall take you in their sledge."

"That I will," said Maud, who was not unwilling to see the inside of
Cadover. But Rickie went round by the trains.

"We have all missed you," said Ansell, when he returned. "There is a
general feeling that you are no nuisance, and had better stop till the
end of the vac."

This he could not do. He was bound for Christmas to the Silts--"as a
REAL guest," Mrs. Silt had written, underlining the word "real" twice.
And after Christmas he must go to the Pembrokes.

"These are no reasons. The only real reason for doing a thing is because
you want to do it. I think the talk about 'engagements' is cant."

"I think perhaps it is," said Rickie. But he went. Never had the turkey
been so athletic, or the plum-pudding tied into its cloth so tightly.
Yet he knew that both these symbols of hilarity had cost money, and
it went to his heart when Mr. Silt said in a hungry voice, "Have you
thought at all of what you want to be? No? Well, why should you? You
have no need to be anything." And at dessert: "I wonder who Cadover goes
to? I expect money will follow money. It always does." It was with a
guilty feeling of relief that he left for the Pembrokes'.

The Pembrokes lived in an adjacent suburb, or rather "sububurb,"--the
tract called Sawston, celebrated for its public school. Their style of
life, however, was not particularly suburban. Their house was small and
its name was Shelthorpe, but it had an air about it which suggested a
certain amount of money and a certain amount of taste. There were decent
water-colours in the drawing-room. Madonnas of acknowledged merit hung
upon the stairs. A replica of the Hermes of Praxiteles--of course only
the bust--stood in the hall with a real palm behind it. Agnes, in her
slap-dash way, was a good housekeeper, and kept the pretty things well
dusted. It was she who insisted on the strip of brown holland that led
diagonally from the front door to the door of Herbert's study: boys'
grubby feet should not go treading on her Indian square. It was she who
always cleaned the picture-frames and washed the bust and the leaves of
the palm. In short, if a house could speak--and sometimes it does speak
more clearly than the people who live in it--the house of the Pembrokes
would have said, "I am not quite like other houses, yet I am perfectly
comfortable. I contain works of art and a microscope and books. But I do
not live for any of these things or suffer them to disarrange me. I live
for myself and for the greater houses that shall come after me. Yet in
me neither the cry of money nor the cry for money shall ever be heard."

Mr. Pembroke was at the station. He did better as a host than as a
guest, and welcomed the young man with real friendliness.

"We were all coming, but Gerald has strained his ankle slightly,
and wants to keep quiet, as he is playing next week in a match. And,
needless to say, that explains the absence of my sister."

"Gerald Dawes?"

"Yes; he's with us. I'm so glad you'll meet again."

"So am I," said Rickie with extreme awkwardness. "Does he remember me?"

"Vividly."

Vivid also was Rickie's remembrance of him.

"A splendid fellow," asserted Mr. Pembroke.

"I hope that Agnes is well."

"Thank you, yes; she is well. And I think you're looking more like other
people yourself."

"I've been having a very good time with a friend."

"Indeed. That's right. Who was that?"

Rickie had a young man's reticence. He generally spoke of "a friend,"
"a person I know," "a place I was at." When the book of life is opening,
our readings are secret, and we are unwilling to give chapter and verse.
Mr. Pembroke, who was half way through the volume, and had skipped or
forgotten the earlier pages, could not understand Rickie's hesitation,
nor why with such awkwardness he should pronounce the harmless
dissyllable "Ansell."

"Ansell? Wasn't that the pleasant fellow who asked us to lunch?"

"No. That was Anderson, who keeps below. You didn't see Ansell. The ones
who came to breakfast were Tilliard and Hornblower."

"Of course. And since then you have been with the Silts. How are they?"

"Very well, thank you. They want to be remembered to you."

The Pembrokes had formerly lived near the Elliots, and had shown great
kindness to Rickie when his parents died. They were thus rather in the
position of family friends.

"Please remember us when you write." He added, almost roguishly, "The
Silts are kindness itself. All the same, it must be just a little--dull,
we thought, and we thought that you might like a change. And of course
we are delighted to have you besides. That goes without saying."

"It's very good of you," said Rickie, who had accepted the invitation
because he felt he ought to.

"Not a bit. And you mustn't expect us to be otherwise than quiet on the
holidays. There is a library of a sort, as you know, and you will find
Gerald a splendid fellow."

"Will they be married soon?"

"Oh no!" whispered Mr. Pembroke, shutting his eyes, as if Rickie had
made some terrible faux pas. "It will be a very long engagement. He must
make his way first. I have seen such endless misery result from people
marrying before they have made their way."

"Yes. That is so," said Rickie despondently, thinking of the Silts.

"It's a sad unpalatable truth," said Mr. Pembroke, thinking that the
despondency might be personal, "but one must accept it. My sister and
Gerald, I am thankful to say, have accepted it, though naturally it has
been a little pill."

Their cab lurched round the corner as he spoke, and the two patients
came in sight. Agnes was leaning over the creosoted garden-gate, and
behind her there stood a young man who had the figure of a Greek athlete
and the face of an English one. He was fair and cleanshaven, and his
colourless hair was cut rather short. The sun was in his eyes, and they,
like his mouth, seemed scarcely more than slits in his healthy skin.
Just where he began to be beautiful the clothes started. Round his neck
went an up-and-down collar and a mauve-and-gold tie, and the rest of his
limbs were hidden by a grey lounge suit, carefully creased in the right
places.

"Lovely! Lovely!" cried Agnes, banging on the gate, "Your train must
have been to the minute."

"Hullo!" said the athlete, and vomited with the greeting a cloud of
tobacco-smoke. It must have been imprisoned in his mouth some time, for
no pipe was visible.

"Hullo!" returned Rickie, laughing violently. They shook hands.

"Where are you going, Rickie?" asked Agnes. "You aren't grubby. Why
don't you stop? Gerald, get the large wicker-chair. Herbert has letters,
but we can sit here till lunch. It's like spring."

The garden of Shelthorpe was nearly all in front an unusual and pleasant
arrangement. The front gate and the servants' entrance were both at the
side, and in the remaining space the gardener had contrived a little
lawn where one could sit concealed from the road by a fence, from the
neighbour by a fence, from the house by a tree, and from the path by a
bush.

"This is the lovers' bower," observed Agnes, sitting down on the bench.
Rickie stood by her till the chair arrived.

"Are you smoking before lunch?" asked Mr. Dawes.

"No, thank you. I hardly ever smoke."

"No vices. Aren't you at Cambridge now?"

"Yes."

"What's your college?"

Rickie told him.

"Do you know Carruthers?"

"Rather!"

"I mean A. P. Carruthers, who got his socker blue."

"Rather! He's secretary to the college musical society."

"A. P. Carruthers?"

"Yes."

Mr. Dawes seemed offended. He tapped on his teeth, and remarked that the
weather bad no business to be so warm in winter. "But it was fiendish
before Christmas," said Agnes.

He frowned, and asked, "Do you know a man called Gerrish?"

"No."

"Ah."

"Do you know James?"

"Never heard of him."

"He's my year too. He got a blue for hockey his second term."

"I know nothing about the 'Varsity."

Rickie winced at the abbreviation "'Varsity." It was at that time the
proper thing to speak of "the University."

"I haven't the time," pursued Mr. Dawes.

"No, no," said Rickie politely.

"I had the chance of being an Undergrad, myself, and, by Jove, I'm
thankful I didn't!"

"Why?" asked Agnes, for there was a pause.

"Puts you back in your profession. Men who go there first, before the
Army, start hopelessly behind. The same with the Stock Exchange or
Painting. I know men in both, and they've never caught up the time they
lost in the 'Varsity--unless, of course, you turn parson."

"I love Cambridge," said she. "All those glorious buildings, and every
one so happy and running in and out of each other's rooms all day long."

"That might make an Undergrad happy, but I beg leave to state it
wouldn't me. I haven't four years to throw away for the sake of being
called a 'Varsity man and hobnobbing with Lords."

Rickie was prepared to find his old schoolfellow ungrammatical and
bumptious, but he was not prepared to find him peevish. Athletes, he
believed, were simple, straightforward people, cruel and brutal if you
like, but never petty. They knocked you down and hurt you, and then went
on their way rejoicing. For this, Rickie thought, there is something to
be said: he had escaped the sin of despising the physically strong--a
sin against which the physically weak must guard. But here was Dawes
returning again and again to the subject of the University, full of
transparent jealousy and petty spite, nagging, nagging, nagging, like
a maiden lady who has not been invited to a tea-party. Rickie wondered
whether, after all, Ansell and the extremists might not be right, and
bodily beauty and strength be signs of the soul's damnation.

He glanced at Agnes. She was writing down some orderings for the
tradespeople on a piece of paper. Her handsome face was intent on the
work. The bench on which she and Gerald were sitting had no back, but
she sat as straight as a dart. He, though strong enough to sit straight,
did not take the trouble.

"Why don't they talk to each other?" thought Rickie.

"Gerald, give this paper to the cook."

"I can give it to the other slavey, can't I?"

"She'd be dressing."

"Well, there's Herbert."

"He's busy. Oh, you know where the kitchen is. Take it to the cook."

He disappeared slowly behind the tree.

"What do you think of him?" she immediately asked. He murmured civilly.

"Has he changed since he was a schoolboy?"

"In a way."

"Do tell me all about him. Why won't you?"

She might have seen a flash of horror pass over Rickie's face. The
horror disappeared, for, thank God, he was now a man, whom civilization
protects. But he and Gerald had met, as it were, behind the scenes,
before our decorous drama opens, and there the elder boy had done things
to him--absurd things, not worth chronicling separately. An apple-pie
bed is nothing; pinches, kicks, boxed ears, twisted arms, pulled hair,
ghosts at night, inky books, befouled photographs, amount to very little
by themselves. But let them be united and continuous, and you have a
hell that no grown-up devil can devise. Between Rickie and Gerald there
lay a shadow that darkens life more often than we suppose. The bully and
his victim never quite forget their first relations. They meet in clubs
and country houses, and clap one another on the back; but in both the
memory is green of a more strenuous day, when they were boys together.

He tried to say, "He was the right kind of boy, and I was the wrong
kind." But Cambridge would not let him smooth the situation over by
self-belittlement. If he had been the wrong kind of boy, Gerald had been
a worse kind. He murmured, "We are different, very," and Miss Pembroke,
perhaps suspecting something, asked no more. But she kept to the subject
of Mr. Dawes, humorously depreciating her lover and discussing him
without reverence. Rickie laughed, but felt uncomfortable. When people
were engaged, he felt that they should be outside criticism. Yet here he
was criticizing. He could not help it. He was dragged in.

"I hope his ankle is better."

"Never was bad. He's always fussing over something."

"He plays next week in a match, I think Herbert says."

"I dare say he does."

"Shall we be going?"

"Pray go if you like. I shall stop at home. I've had enough of cold
feet."

It was all very colourless and odd.

Gerald returned, saying, "I can't stand your cook. What's she want to
ask me questions for? I can't stand talking to servants. I say, 'If I
speak to you, well and good'--and it's another thing besides if she were
pretty."

"Well, I hope our ugly cook will have lunch ready in a minute," said
Agnes. "We're frightfully unpunctual this morning, and I daren't say
anything, because it was the same yesterday, and if I complain again
they might leave. Poor Rickie must be starved."

"Why, the Silts gave me all these sandwiches and I've never eaten them.
They always stuff one."

"And you thought you'd better, eh?" said Mr. Dawes, "in case you weren't
stuffed here."

Miss Pembroke, who house-kept somewhat economically, looked annoyed.

The voice of Mr. Pembroke was now heard calling from the house,
"Frederick! Frederick! My dear boy, pardon me. It was an important
letter about the Church Defence, otherwise--. Come in and see your
room."

He was glad to quit the little lawn. He had learnt too much there. It
was dreadful: they did not love each other. More dreadful even than the
case of his father and mother, for they, until they married, had got on
pretty well. But this man was already rude and brutal and cold: he was
still the school bully who twisted up the arms of little boys, and ran
pins into them at chapel, and struck them in the stomach when they were
swinging on the horizontal bar. Poor Agnes; why ever had she done it?
Ought not somebody to interfere?

He had forgotten his sandwiches, and went back to get them.

Gerald and Agnes were locked in each other's arms.

He only looked for a moment, but the sight burnt into his brain. The
man's grip was the stronger. He had drawn the woman on to his knee,
was pressing her, with all his strength, against him. Already her hands
slipped off him, and she whispered, "Don't you hurt--" Her face had no
expression. It stared at the intruder and never saw him. Then her lover
kissed it, and immediately it shone with mysterious beauty, like some
star.

Rickie limped away without the sandwiches, crimson and afraid. He
thought, "Do such things actually happen?" and he seemed to be looking
down coloured valleys. Brighter they glowed, till gods of pure flame
were born in them, and then he was looking at pinnacles of virgin snow.
While Mr. Pembroke talked, the riot of fair images increased.

They invaded his being and lit lamps at unsuspected shrines. Their
orchestra commenced in that suburban house, where he had to stand aside
for the maid to carry in the luncheon. Music flowed past him like
a river. He stood at the springs of creation and heard the primeval
monotony. Then an obscure instrument gave out a little phrase.

The river continued unheeding. The phrase was repeated and a listener
might know it was a fragment of the Tune of tunes. Nobler instruments
accepted it, the clarionet protected, the brass encouraged, and it rose
to the surface to the whisper of violins. In full unison was Love born,
flame of the flame, flushing the dark river beneath him and the virgin
snows above. His wings were infinite, his youth eternal; the sun was
a jewel on his finger as he passed it in benediction over the world.
Creation, no longer monotonous, acclaimed him, in widening melody, in
brighter radiances. Was Love a column of fire? Was he a torrent of song?
Was he greater than either--the touch of a man on a woman?

It was the merest accident that Rickie had not been disgusted. But this
he could not know.

Mr. Pembroke, when he called the two dawdlers into lunch, was aware of a
hand on his arm and a voice that murmured, "Don't--they may be happy."

He stared, and struck the gong. To its music they approached, priest and
high priestess.

"Rickie, can I give these sandwiches to the boot boy?" said the one. "He
would love them."

"The gong! Be quick! The gong!"

"Are you smoking before lunch?" said the other.

But they had got into heaven, and nothing could get them out of it.
Others might think them surly or prosaic. He knew. He could remember
every word they spoke. He would treasure every motion, every glance of
either, and so in time to come, when the gates of heaven had shut, some
faint radiance, some echo of wisdom might remain with him outside.

As a matter of fact, he saw them very little during his visit. He
checked himself because he was unworthy. What right had he to pry, even
in the spirit, upon their bliss? It was no crime to have seen them
on the lawn. It would be a crime to go to it again. He tried to keep
himself and his thoughts away, not because he was ascetic, but because
they would not like it if they knew. This behaviour of his suited them
admirably. And when any gracious little thing occurred to them--any
little thing that his sympathy had contrived and allowed--they put it
down to chance or to each other.

So the lovers fall into the background. They are part of the distant
sunrise, and only the mountains speak to them. Rickie talks to Mr.
Pembroke, amidst the unlit valleys of our over-habitable world.



IV

Sawston School had been founded by a tradesman in the seventeenth
century. It was then a tiny grammar-school in a tiny town, and the City
Company who governed it had to drive half a day through the woods and
heath on the occasion of their annual visit. In the twentieth century
they still drove, but only from the railway station; and found
themselves not in a tiny town, nor yet in a large one, but amongst
innumerable residences, detached and semi-detached, which had gathered
round the school. For the intentions of the founder had been altered, or
at all events amplified, instead of educating the "poore of my home,"
he now educated the upper classes of England. The change had taken place
not so very far back. Till the nineteenth century the grammar-school was
still composed of day scholars from the neighbourhood. Then two things
happened. Firstly, the school's property rose in value, and it became
rich. Secondly, for no obvious reason, it suddenly emitted a quantity
of bishops. The bishops, like the stars from a Roman candle, were
all colours, and flew in all directions, some high, some low, some to
distant colonies, one into the Church of Rome. But many a father traced
their course in the papers; many a mother wondered whether her son, if
properly ignited, might not burn as bright; many a family moved to the
place where living and education were so cheap, where day-boys were not
looked down upon, and where the orthodox and the up-to-date were said to
be combined. The school doubled its numbers. It built new class-rooms,
laboratories and a gymnasium. It dropped the prefix "Grammar." It coaxed
the sons of the local tradesmen into a new foundation, the "Commercial
School," built a couple of miles away. And it started boarding-houses.
It had not the gracious antiquity of Eton or Winchester, nor, on the
other hand, had it a conscious policy like Lancing, Wellington, and
other purely modern foundations. Where tradition served, it clung to
them. Where new departures seemed desirable, they were made. It aimed
at producing the average Englishman, and, to a very great extent, it
succeeded.

Here Mr. Pembroke passed his happy and industrious life. His technical
position was that of master to a form low down on the Modern Side. But
his work lay elsewhere. He organized. If no organization existed,
he would create one. If one did exist, he would modify it. "An
organization," he would say, "is after all not an end in itself. It must
contribute to a movement." When one good custom seemed likely to
corrupt the school, he was ready with another; he believed that without
innumerable customs there was no safety, either for boys or men.

Perhaps he is right, and always will be right. Perhaps each of us
would go to ruin if for one short hour we acted as we thought fit, and
attempted the service of perfect freedom. The school caps, with their
elaborate symbolism, were his; his the many-tinted bathing-drawers,
that showed how far a boy could swim; his the hierarchy of jerseys and
blazers. It was he who instituted Bounds, and call, and the two sorts
of exercise-paper, and the three sorts of caning, and "The Sawtonian," a
bi-terminal magazine. His plump finger was in every pie. The dome of
his skull, mild but impressive, shone at every master's meeting. He was
generally acknowledged to be the coming man.

His last achievement had been the organization of the day-boys. They had
been left too much to themselves, and were weak in esprit de corps;
they were apt to regard home, not school, as the most important thing
in their lives. Moreover, they got out of their parents' hands; they did
their preparation any time and some times anyhow. They shirked games,
they were out at all hours, they ate what they should not, they smoked,
they bicycled on the asphalt. Now all was over. Like boarders, they
were to be in at 7:15 P.M., and were not allowed out after unless with
a written order from their parent or guardian; they, too, must work at
fixed hours in the evening, and before breakfast next morning from 7 to
8. Games were compulsory. They must not go to parties in term time.
They must keep to bounds. Of course the reform was not complete. It
was impossible to control the dieting, though, on a printed circular,
day-parents were implored to provide simple food. And it is also
believed that some mothers disobeyed the rule about preparation, and
allowed their sons to do all the work over-night and have a longer
sleep in the morning. But the gulf between day-boys and boarders was
considerably lessened, and grew still narrower when the day-boys too
were organized into a House with house-master and colours of their own.
"Through the House," said Mr. Pembroke, "one learns patriotism for
the school, just as through the school one learns patriotism for the
country. Our only course, therefore, is to organize the day-boys into
a House." The headmaster agreed, as he often did, and the new community
was formed. Mr. Pembroke, to avoid the tongues of malice, had refused
the post of house-master for himself, saying to Mr. Jackson, who taught
the sixth, "You keep too much in the background. Here is a chance for
you." But this was a failure. Mr. Jackson, a scholar and a student,
neither felt nor conveyed any enthusiasm, and when confronted with his
House, would say, "Well, I don't know what we're all here for. Now I
should think you'd better go home to your mothers." He returned to his
background, and next term Mr. Pembroke was to take his place.

Such were the themes on which Mr. Pembroke discoursed to Rickie's civil
ear. He showed him the school, and the library, and the subterranean
hall where the day-boys might leave their coats and caps, and where, on
festal occasions, they supped. He showed him Mr. Jackson's pretty house,
and whispered, "Were it not for his brilliant intellect, it would be a
case of Quickmarch!" He showed him the racquet-court, happily completed,
and the chapel, unhappily still in need of funds. Rickie was impressed,
but then he was impressed by everything. Of course a House of day-boys
seemed a little shadowy after Agnes and Gerald, but he imparted some
reality even to that.

"The racquet-court," said Mr. Pembroke, "is most gratifying. We never
expected to manage it this year. But before the Easter holidays every
boy received a subscription card, and was given to understand that he
must collect thirty shillings. You will scarcely believe me, but they
nearly all responded. Next term there was a dinner in the great school,
and all who had collected, not thirty shillings, but as much as a
pound, were invited to it--for naturally one was not precise for a few
shillings, the response being the really valuable thing. Practically the
whole school had to come."

"They must enjoy the court tremendously."

"Ah, it isn't used very much. Racquets, as I daresay you know, is rather
an expensive game. Only the wealthier boys play--and I'm sorry to say
that it is not of our wealthier boys that we are always the proudest.
But the point is that no public school can be called first-class until
it has one. They are building them right and left."

"And now you must finish the chapel?"

"Now we must complete the chapel." He paused reverently, and said, "And
here is a fragment of the original building." Rickie at once had a rush
of sympathy. He, too, looked with reverence at the morsel of Jacobean
brickwork, ruddy and beautiful amidst the machine-squared stones of the
modern apse. The two men, who had so little in common, were thrilled
with patriotism. They rejoiced that their country was great, noble, and
old.

"Thank God I'm English," said Rickie suddenly.

"Thank Him indeed," said Mr. Pembroke, laying a hand on his back.

"We've been nearly as great as the Greeks, I do believe. Greater, I'm
sure, than the Italians, though they did get closer to beauty. Greater
than the French, though we do take all their ideas. I can't help
thinking that England is immense. English literature certainly."

Mr. Pembroke removed his hand. He found such patriotism somewhat craven.
Genuine patriotism comes only from the heart. It knows no parleying with
reason. English ladies will declare abroad that there are no fogs in
London, and Mr. Pembroke, though he would not go to this, was only
restrained by the certainty of being found out. On this occasion
he remarked that the Greeks lacked spiritual insight, and had a low
conception of woman.

"As to women--oh! there they were dreadful," said Rickie, leaning his
hand on the chapel. "I realize that more and more. But as to spiritual
insight, I don't quite like to say; and I find Plato too difficult, but
I know men who don't, and I fancy they mightn't agree with you."

"Far be it from me to disparage Plato. And for philosophy as a whole I
have the greatest respect. But it is the crown of a man's education,
not the foundation. Myself, I read it with the utmost profit, but I have
known endless trouble result from boys who attempt it too soon, before
they were set."

"But if those boys had died first," cried Rickie with sudden vehemence,
"without knowing what there is to know--"

"Or isn't to know!" said Mr. Pembroke sarcastically.

"Or what there isn't to know. Exactly. That's it."

"My dear Rickie, what do you mean? If an old friend may be frank, you
are talking great rubbish." And, with a few well-worn formulae, he
propped up the young man's orthodoxy. The props were unnecessary. Rickie
had his own equilibrium. Neither the Revivalism that assails a boy at
about the age of fifteen, nor the scepticism that meets him five years
later, could sway him from his allegiance to the church into which he
had been born. But his equilibrium was personal, and the secret of it
useless to others. He desired that each man should find his own.

"What does philosophy do?" the propper continued. "Does it make a man
happier in life? Does it make him die more peacefully? I fancy that in
the long-run Herbert Spencer will get no further than the rest of us.
Ah, Rickie! I wish you could move among the school boys, and see their
healthy contempt for all they cannot touch!" Here he was going too far,
and had to add, "Their spiritual capacities, of course, are another
matter." Then he remembered the Greeks, and said, "Which proves my
original statement."

Submissive signs, as of one propped, appeared in Rickie's face.
Mr. Pembroke then questioned him about the men who found Plato not
difficult. But here he kept silence, patting the school chapel gently,
and presently the conversation turned to topics with which they were
both more competent to deal.

"Does Agnes take much interest in the school?"

"Not as much as she did. It is the result of her engagement. If our
naughty soldier had not carried her off, she might have made an ideal
schoolmaster's wife. I often chaff him about it, for he a little
despises the intellectual professions. Natural, perfectly natural. How
can a man who faces death feel as we do towards mensa or tupto?"

"Perfectly true. Absolutely true."

Mr. Pembroke remarked to himself that Frederick was improving.

"If a man shoots straight and hits straight and speaks straight, if his
heart is in the right place, if he has the instincts of a Christian
and a gentleman--then I, at all events, ask no better husband for my
sister."

"How could you get a better?" he cried. "Do you remember the thing in
'The Clouds'?" And he quoted, as well as he could, from the invitation
of the Dikaios Logos, the description of the young Athenian, perfect in
body, placid in mind, who neglects his work at the Bar and trains all
day among the woods and meadows, with a garland on his head and a friend
to set the pace; the scent of new leaves is upon them; they rejoice in
the freshness of spring; over their heads the plane-tree whispers to the
elm, perhaps the most glorious invitation to the brainless life that has
ever been given.

"Yes, yes," said Mr. Pembroke, who did not want a brother-in-law out of
Aristophanes. Nor had he got one, for Mr. Dawes would not have bothered
over the garland or noticed the spring, and would have complained that
the friend ran too slowly or too fast.

"And as for her--!" But he could think of no classical parallel for
Agnes. She slipped between examples. A kindly Medea, a Cleopatra with a
sense of duty--these suggested her a little. She was not born in Greece,
but came overseas to it--a dark, intelligent princess. With all her
splendour, there were hints of splendour still hidden--hints of an
older, richer, and more mysterious land. He smiled at the idea of her
being "not there." Ansell, clever as he was, had made a bad blunder. She
had more reality than any other woman in the world.

Mr. Pembroke looked pleased at this boyish enthusiasm. He was fond of
his sister, though he knew her to be full of faults. "Yes, I envy her,"
he said. "She has found a worthy helpmeet for life's journey, I do
believe. And though they chafe at the long engagement, it is a blessing
in disguise. They learn to know each other thoroughly before contracting
more intimate ties."

Rickie did not assent. The length of the engagement seemed to him
unspeakably cruel. Here were two people who loved each other, and they
could not marry for years because they had no beastly money. Not all
Herbert's pious skill could make this out a blessing. It was bad enough
being "so rich" at the Silts; here he was more ashamed of it than ever.
In a few weeks he would come of age and his money be his own. What a
pity things were so crookedly arranged. He did not want money, or at all
events he did not want so much.

"Suppose," he meditated, for he became much worried over this,--"suppose
I had a hundred pounds a year less than I shall have. Well, I should
still have enough. I don't want anything but food, lodging, clothes,
and now and then a railway fare. I haven't any tastes. I don't collect
anything or play games. Books are nice to have, but after all there is
Mudie's, or if it comes to that, the Free Library. Oh, my profession! I
forgot I shall have a profession. Well, that will leave me with more to
spare than ever." And he supposed away till he lost touch with the world
and with what it permits, and committed an unpardonable sin.

It happened towards the end of his visit--another airless day of that
mild January. Mr. Dawes was playing against a scratch team of cads, and
had to go down to the ground in the morning to settle something. Rickie
proposed to come too.

Hitherto he had been no nuisance. "You will be frightfully bored," said
Agnes, observing the cloud on her lover's face. "And Gerald walks like a
maniac."

"I had a little thought of the Museum this morning," said Mr. Pembroke.
"It is very strong in flint arrow-heads."

"Ah, that's your line, Rickie. I do envy you and Herbert the way you
enjoy the past."

"I almost think I'll go with Dawes, if he'll have me. I can walk quite
fast just to the ground and back. Arrowheads are wonderful, but I don't
really enjoy them yet, though I hope I shall in time."

Mr. Pembroke was offended, but Rickie held firm.

In a quarter of an hour he was back at the house alone, nearly crying.

"Oh, did the wretch go too fast?" called Miss Pembroke from her bedroom
window.

"I went too fast for him." He spoke quite sharply, and before he had
time to say he was sorry and didn't mean exactly that, the window had
shut.

"They've quarrelled," she thought. "Whatever about?"

She soon heard. Gerald returned in a cold stormy temper. Rickie had
offered him money.

"My dear fellow don't be so cross. The child's mad."

"If it was, I'd forgive that. But I can't stand unhealthiness."

"Now, Gerald, that's where I hate you. You don't know what it is to pity
the weak."

"Woman's job. So you wish I'd taken a hundred pounds a year from him.
Did you ever hear such blasted cheek? Marry us--he, you, and me--a
hundred pounds down and as much annual--he, of course, to pry into all
we did, and we to kowtow and eat dirt-pie to him. If that's Mr. Rickety
Elliot's idea of a soldier and an Englishman, it isn't mine, and I wish
I'd had a horse-whip."

She was roaring with laughter. "You're babies, a pair of you, and you're
the worst. Why couldn't you let the little silly down gently? There he
was puffing and sniffing under my window, and I thought he'd insulted
you. Why didn't you accept?"

"Accept?" he thundered.

"It would have taken the nonsense out of him for ever. Why, he was only
talking out of a book."

"More fool he."

"Well, don't be angry with a fool. He means no harm. He muddles all day
with poetry and old dead people, and then tries to bring it into life.
It's too funny for words."

Gerald repeated that he could not stand unhealthiness.

"I don't call that exactly unhealthy."

"I do. And why he could give the money's worse."

"What do you mean?"

He became shy. "I hadn't meant to tell you. It's not quite for a lady."
For, like most men who are rather animal, he was intellectually a prude.
"He says he can't ever marry, owing to his foot. It wouldn't be fair to
posterity. His grandfather was crocked, his father too, and he's as bad.
He thinks that it's hereditary, and may get worse next generation. He's
discussed it all over with other Undergrads. A bright lot they must be.
He daren't risk having any children. Hence the hundred quid."

She stopped laughing. "Oh, little beast, if he said all that!"

He was encouraged to proceed. Hitherto he had not talked about their
school days. Now he told her everything,--the "barley-sugar," as he
called it, the pins in chapel, and how one afternoon he had tied him
head-downward on to a tree trunk and then ran away--of course only for a
moment.

For this she scolded him well. But she had a thrill of joy when she
thought of the weak boy in the clutches of the strong one.



V

Gerald died that afternoon. He was broken up in the football match.
Rickie and Mr. Pembroke were on the ground when the accident took place.
It was no good torturing him by a drive to the hospital, and he was
merely carried to the little pavilion and laid upon the floor. A doctor
came, and so did a clergyman, but it seemed better to leave him for the
last few minutes with Agnes, who had ridden down on her bicycle.

It was a strange lamentable interview. The girl was so accustomed to
health, that for a time she could not understand. It must be a joke that
he chose to lie there in the dust, with a rug over him and his knees
bent up towards his chin. His arms were as she knew them, and their
admirable muscles showed clear and clean beneath the jersey. The face,
too, though a little flushed, was uninjured: it must be some curious
joke.

"Gerald, what have you been doing?"

He replied, "I can't see you. It's too dark."

"Oh, I'll soon alter that," she said in her old brisk way. She opened
the pavilion door. The people who were standing by it moved aside. She
saw a deserted meadow, steaming and grey, and beyond it slateroofed
cottages, row beside row, climbing a shapeless hill. Towards London the
sky was yellow. "There. That's better." She sat down by him again, and
drew his hand into her own. "Now we are all right, aren't we?"

"Where are you?"

This time she could not reply.

"What is it? Where am I going?"

"Wasn't the rector here?" said she after a silence.

"He explained heaven, and thinks that I--but--I couldn't tell a parson;
but I don't seem to have any use for any of the things there."

"We are Christians," said Agnes shyly. "Dear love, we don't talk about
these things, but we believe them. I think that you will get well and
be as strong again as ever; but, in any case, there is a spiritual life,
and we know that some day you and I--"

"I shan't do as a spirit," he interrupted, sighing pitifully. "I want
you as I am, and it cannot be managed. The rector had to say so. I
want--I don't want to talk. I can't see you. Shut that door."

She obeyed, and crept into his arms. Only this time her grasp was the
stronger. Her heart beat louder and louder as the sound of his grew more
faint. He was crying like a little frightened child, and her lips were
wet with his tears. "Bear it bravely," she told him.

"I can't," he whispered. "It isn't to be done. I can't see you," and
passed from her trembling with open eyes.

She rode home on her bicycle, leaving the others to follow. Some ladies
who did not know what had happened bowed and smiled as she passed, and
she returned their salute.

"Oh, miss, is it true?" cried the cook, her face streaming with tears.

Agnes nodded. Presumably it was true. Letters had just arrived: one
was for Gerald from his mother. Life, which had given them no warning,
seemed to make no comment now. The incident was outside nature, and
would surely pass away like a dream. She felt slightly irritable, and
the grief of the servants annoyed her.

They sobbed. "Ah, look at his marks! Ah, little he thought--little he
thought!" In the brown holland strip by the front door a heavy football
boot had left its impress. They had not liked Gerald, but he was a man,
they were women, he had died. Their mistress ordered them to leave her.

For many minutes she sat at the foot of the stairs, rubbing her eyes. An
obscure spiritual crisis was going on.

Should she weep like the servants? Or should she bear up and trust in
the consoler Time? Was the death of a man so terrible after all? As she
invited herself to apathy there were steps on the gravel, and Rickie
Elliot burst in. He was splashed with mud, his breath was gone, and
his hair fell wildly over his meagre face. She thought, "These are the
people who are left alive!" From the bottom of her soul she hated him.

"I came to see what you're doing," he cried.

"Resting."

He knelt beside her, and she said, "Would you please go away?"

"Yes, dear Agnes, of course; but I must see first that you mind." Her
breath caught. Her eves moved to the treads, going outwards, so firmly,
so irretrievably.

He panted, "It's the worst thing that can ever happen to you in all
your life, and you've got to mind it you've got to mind it. They'll come
saying, 'Bear up trust to time.' No, no; they're wrong. Mind it."

Through all her misery she knew that this boy was greater than they
supposed. He rose to his feet, and with intense conviction cried: "But
I know--I understand. It's your death as well as his. He's gone, Agnes,
and his arms will never hold you again. In God's name, mind such a
thing, and don't sit fencing with your soul. Don't stop being great;
that's the one crime he'll never forgive you."

She faltered, "Who--who forgives?"

"Gerald."

At the sound of his name she slid forward, and all her dishonesty left
her. She acknowledged that life's meaning had vanished. Bending down,
she kissed the footprint. "How can he forgive me?" she sobbed. "Where
has he gone to? You could never dream such an awful thing. He couldn't
see me though I opened the door--wide--plenty of light; and then he
could not remember the things that should comfort him. He wasn't a--he
wasn't ever a great reader, and he couldn't remember the things. The
rector tried, and he couldn't--I came, and I couldn't--" She could not
speak for tears. Rickie did not check her. He let her accuse herself,
and fate, and Herbert, who had postponed their marriage. She might have
been a wife six months; but Herbert had spoken of self-control and of
all life before them. He let her kiss the footprints till their marks
gave way to the marks of her lips. She moaned. "He is gone--where is
he?" and then he replied quite quietly, "He is in heaven."

She begged him not to comfort her; she could not bear it.

"I did not come to comfort you. I came to see that you mind. He is in
heaven, Agnes. The greatest thing is over."

Her hatred was lulled. She murmured, "Dear Rickie!" and held up her hand
to him. Through her tears his meagre face showed as a seraph's who spoke
the truth and forbade her to juggle with her soul. "Dear Rickie--but for
the rest of my life what am I to do?"

"Anything--if you remember that the greatest thing is over."

"I don't know you," she said tremulously. "You have grown up in a
moment. You never talked to us, and yet you understand it all. Tell me
again--I can only trust you--where he is."

"He is in heaven."

"You are sure?"

It puzzled her that Rickie, who could scarcely tell you the time without
a saving clause, should be so certain about immortality.



VI

He did not stop for the funeral. Mr. Pembroke thought that he had a bad
effect on Agnes, and prevented her from acquiescing in the tragedy as
rapidly as she might have done. As he expressed it, "one must not court
sorrow," and he hinted to the young man that they desired to be alone.

Rickie went back to the Silts.

He was only there a few days. As soon as term opened he returned to
Cambridge, for which he longed passionately. The journey thither was now
familiar to him, and he took pleasure in each landmark. The fair valley
of Tewin Water, the cutting into Hitchin where the train traverses the
chalk, Baldock Church, Royston with its promise of downs, were nothing
in themselves, but dear as stages in the pilgrimage towards the abode
of peace. On the platform he met friends. They had all had pleasant
vacations: it was a happy world. The atmosphere alters.

Cambridge, according to her custom, welcomed her sons with open drains.
Pettycury was up, so was Trinity Street, and navvies peeped out of
King's Parade. Here it was gas, there electric light, but everywhere
something, and always a smell. It was also the day that the wheels fell
off the station tram, and Rickie, who was naturally inside, was among
the passengers who "sustained no injury but a shock, and had as hearty a
laugh over the mishap afterwards as any one."

Tilliard fled into a hansom, cursing himself for having tried to do the
thing cheaply. Hornblower also swept past yelling derisively, with his
luggage neatly piled above his head. "Let's get out and walk," muttered
Ansell. But Rickie was succouring a distressed female--Mrs. Aberdeen.

"Oh, Mrs. Aberdeen, I never saw you: I am so glad to see you--I am so
very glad." Mrs. Aberdeen was cold. She did not like being spoken to
outside the college, and was also distrait about her basket. Hitherto
no genteel eye had even seen inside it, but in the collision its little
calico veil fell off, and there was revealed--nothing. The basket was
empty, and never would hold anything illegal. All the same she was
distrait, and "We shall meet later, sir, I dessy," was all the greeting
Rickie got from her.

"Now what kind of a life has Mrs. Aberdeen?" he exclaimed, as he and
Ansell pursued the Station Road. "Here these bedders come and make us
comfortable. We owe an enormous amount to them, their wages are absurd,
and we know nothing about them. Off they go to Barnwell, and then their
lives are hidden. I just know that Mrs. Aberdeen has a husband, but
that's all. She never will talk about him. Now I do so want to fill in
her life. I see one-half of it. What's the other half? She may have a
real jolly house, in good taste, with a little garden and books, and
pictures. Or, again, she mayn't. But in any case one ought to know. I
know she'd dislike it, but she oughtn't to dislike. After all, bedders
are to blame for the present lamentable state of things, just as much as
gentlefolk. She ought to want me to come. She ought to introduce me to
her husband."

They had reached the corner of Hills Road. Ansell spoke for the first
time. He said, "Ugh!"

"Drains?"

"Yes. A spiritual cesspool."

Rickie laughed.

"I expected it from your letter."

"The one you never answered?"

"I answer none of your letters. You are quite hopeless by now. You can
go to the bad. But I refuse to accompany you. I refuse to believe that
every human being is a moving wonder of supreme interest and tragedy and
beauty--which was what the letter in question amounted to. You'll find
plenty who will believe it. It's a very popular view among people
who are too idle to think; it saves them the trouble of detecting the
beautiful from the ugly, the interesting from the dull, the tragic from
the melodramatic. You had just come from Sawston, and were apparently
carried away by the fact that Miss Pembroke had the usual amount of arms
and legs."

Rickie was silent. He had told his friend how he felt, but not what had
happened. Ansell could discuss love and death admirably, but somehow he
would not understand lovers or a dying man, and in the letter there had
been scant allusion to these concrete facts. Would Cambridge understand
them either? He watched some dons who were peeping into an excavation,
and throwing up their hands with humorous gestures of despair. These
men would lecture next week on Catiline's conspiracy, on Luther, on
Evolution, on Catullus. They dealt with so much and they had experienced
so little. Was it possible he would ever come to think Cambridge narrow?
In his short life Rickie had known two sudden deaths, and that is enough
to disarrange any placid outlook on the world. He knew once for all
that we are all of us bubbles on an extremely rough sea. Into this sea
humanity has built, as it were, some little breakwaters--scientific
knowledge, civilized restraint--so that the bubbles do not break so
frequently or so soon. But the sea has not altered, and it was only a
chance that he, Ansell, Tilliard, and Mrs. Aberdeen had not all been
killed in the tram.

They waited for the other tram by the Roman Catholic Church, whose
florid bulk was already receding into twilight. It is the first big
building that the incoming visitor sees. "Oh, here come the colleges!"
cries the Protestant parent, and then learns that it was built by a
Papist who made a fortune out of movable eyes for dolls. "Built out of
doll's eyes to contain idols"--that, at all events, is the legend and
the joke. It watches over the apostate city, taller by many a yard than
anything within, and asserting, however wildly, that here is eternity,
stability, and bubbles unbreakable upon a windless sea.

A costly hymn tune announced five o'clock, and in the distance the more
lovable note of St. Mary's could be heard, speaking from the heart of
the town. Then the tram arrived--the slow stuffy tram that plies every
twenty minutes between the unknown and the marketplace--and took them
past the desecrated grounds of Downing, past Addenbrookes Hospital, girt
like a Venetian palace with a mantling canal, past the Fitz William,
towering upon immense substructions like any Roman temple, right up to
the gates of one's own college, which looked like nothing else in the
world. The porters were glad to see them, but wished it had been a
hansom. "Our luggage," explained Rickie, "comes in the hotel omnibus, if
you would kindly pay a shilling for mine." Ansell turned aside to some
large lighted windows, the abode of a hospitable don, and from other
windows there floated familiar voices and the familiar mistakes in a
Beethoven sonata. The college, though small, was civilized, and proud of
its civilization. It was not sufficient glory to be a Blue there, nor
an additional glory to get drunk. Many a maiden lady who had read
that Cambridge men were sad dogs, was surprised and perhaps a little
disappointed at the reasonable life which greeted her. Miss Appleblossom
in particular had had a tremendous shock. The sight of young fellows
making tea and drinking water had made her wonder whether this was
Cambridge College at all. "It is so," she exclaimed afterwards. "It is
just as I say; and what's more, I wouldn't have it otherwise; Stewart
says it's as easy as easy to get into the swim, and not at all
expensive." The direction of the swim was determined a little by the
genius of the place--for places have a genius, though the less we talk
about it the better--and a good deal by the tutors and resident fellows,
who treated with rare dexterity the products that came up yearly
from the public schools. They taught the perky boy that he was not
everything, and the limp boy that he might be something. They even
welcomed those boys who were neither limp nor perky, but odd--those boys
who had never been at a public school at all, and such do not find a
welcome everywhere. And they did everything with ease--one might almost
say with nonchalance, so that the boys noticed nothing, and received
education, often for the first time in their lives.

But Rickie turned to none of these friends, for just then he loved his
rooms better than any person. They were all he really possessed in the
world, the only place he could call his own. Over the door was his name,
and through the paint, like a grey ghost, he could still read the name
of his predecessor. With a sigh of joy he entered the perishable home
that was his for a couple of years. There was a beautiful fire, and
the kettle boiled at once. He made tea on the hearth-rug and ate the
biscuits which Mrs. Aberdeen had brought for him up from Anderson's.
"Gentlemen," she said, "must learn to give and take." He sighed again
and again, like one who had escaped from danger. With his head on the
fender and all his limbs relaxed, he felt almost as safe as he felt once
when his mother killed a ghost in the passage by carrying him through
it in her arms. There was no ghost now; he was frightened at reality; he
was frightened at the splendours and horrors of the world.

A letter from Miss Pembroke was on the table. He did not hurry to open
it, for she, and all that she did, was overwhelming. She wrote like
the Sibyl; her sorrowful face moved over the stars and shattered their
harmonies; last night he saw her with the eyes of Blake, a virgin widow,
tall, veiled, consecrated, with her hands stretched out against an
everlasting wind. Why should she write? Her letters were not for the
likes of him, nor to be read in rooms like his.

"We are not leaving Sawston," she wrote. "I saw how selfish it was of
me to risk spoiling Herbert's career. I shall get used to any place.
Now that he is gone, nothing of that sort can matter. Every one has been
most kind, but you have comforted me most, though you did not mean to. I
cannot think how you did it, or understood so much. I still think of you
as a little boy with a lame leg,--I know you will let me say this,--and
yet when it came to the point you knew more than people who have been
all their lives with sorrow and death."

Rickie burnt this letter, which he ought not to have done, for it was
one of the few tributes Miss Pembroke ever paid to imagination. But
he felt that it did not belong to him: words so sincere should be for
Gerald alone. The smoke rushed up the chimney, and he indulged in a
vision. He saw it reach the outer air and beat against the low ceiling
of clouds. The clouds were too strong for it; but in them was one chink,
revealing one star, and through this the smoke escaped into the light
of stars innumerable. Then--but then the vision failed, and the voice of
science whispered that all smoke remains on earth in the form of smuts,
and is troublesome to Mrs. Aberdeen.

"I am jolly unpractical," he mused. "And what is the point of it when
real things are so wonderful? Who wants visions in a world that has
Agnes and Gerald?" He turned on the electric light and pulled open
the table-drawer. There, among spoons and corks and string, he found a
fragment of a little story that he had tried to write last term. It was
called "The Bay of the Fifteen Islets," and the action took place on St.
John's Eve off the coast of Sicily. A party of tourists land on one of
the islands. Suddenly the boatmen become uneasy, and say that the island
is not generally there. It is an extra one, and they had better have tea
on one of the ordinaries. "Pooh, volcanic!" says the leading tourist,
and the ladies say how interesting. The island begins to rock, and so
do the minds of its visitors. They start and quarrel and jabber. Fingers
burst up through the sand-black fingers of sea devils. The island tilts.
The tourists go mad. But just before the catastrophe one man, integer
vitae scelerisque purus, sees the truth. Here are no devils. Other
muscles, other minds, are pulling the island to its subterranean home.
Through the advancing wall of waters he sees no grisly faces, no
ghastly medieval limbs, but--But what nonsense! When real things are so
wonderful, what is the point of pretending?

And so Rickie deflected his enthusiasms. Hitherto they had played on
gods and heroes, on the infinite and the impossible, on virtue and
beauty and strength. Now, with a steadier radiance, they transfigured a
man who was dead and a woman who was still alive.



VII

Love, say orderly people, can be fallen into by two methods: (1) through
the desires, (2) through the imagination. And if the orderly people are
English, they add that (1) is the inferior method, and characteristic
of the South. It is inferior. Yet those who pursue it at all events
know what they want; they are not puzzling to themselves or ludicrous
to others; they do not take the wings of the morning and fly into the
uttermost parts of the sea before walking to the registry office; they
cannot breed a tragedy quite like Rickie's.

He is, of course, absurdly young--not twenty-one and he will be engaged
to be married at twenty-three. He has no knowledge of the world; for
example, he thinks that if you do not want money you can give it to
friends who do. He believes in humanity because he knows a dozen decent
people. He believes in women because he has loved his mother. And his
friends are as young and as ignorant as himself. They are full of the
wine of life. But they have not tasted the cup--let us call it the
teacup--of experience, which has made men of Mr. Pembroke's type what
they are. Oh, that teacup! To be taken at prayers, at friendship, at
love, till we are quite sane, efficient, quite experienced, and quite
useless to God or man. We must drink it, or we shall die. But we need
not drink it always. Here is our problem and our salvation. There comes
a moment--God knows when--at which we can say, "I will experience no
longer. I will create. I will be an experience." But to do this we must
be both acute and heroic. For it is not easy, after accepting six cups
of tea, to throw the seventh in the face of the hostess. And to Rickie
this moment has not, as yet, been offered.

Ansell, at the end of his third year, got a first in the Moral Science
Tripos. Being a scholar, he kept his rooms in college, and at once
began to work for a Fellowship. Rickie got a creditable second in the
Classical Tripos, Part I., and retired to sallow lodgings in Mill bane,
carrying with him the degree of B.A. and a small exhibition, which was
quite as much as he deserved. For Part II. he read Greek Archaeology,
and got a second. All this means that Ansell was much cleverer than
Rickie. As for the cow, she was still going strong, though turning a
little academic as the years passed over her.

"We are bound to get narrow," sighed Rickie. He and his friend were
lying in a meadow during their last summer term. In his incurable love
for flowers he had plaited two garlands of buttercups and cow-parsley,
and Ansell's lean Jewish face was framed in one of them. "Cambridge is
wonderful, but--but it's so tiny. You have no idea--at least, I think
you have no idea--how the great world looks down on it."

"I read the letters in the papers."

"It's a bad look-out."

"How?"

"Cambridge has lost touch with the times."

"Was she ever intended to touch them?"

"She satisfies," said Rickie mysteriously, "neither the professions, nor
the public schools, nor the great thinking mass of men and women. There
is a general feeling that her day is over, and naturally one feels
pretty sick."

"Do you still write short stories?"

"Because your English has gone to the devil. You think and talk in
Journalese. Define a great thinking mass."

Rickie sat up and adjusted his floral crown.

"Estimate the worth of a general feeling."

Silence.

"And thirdly, where is the great world?"

"Oh that--!"

"Yes. That," exclaimed Ansell, rising from his couch in violent
excitement. "Where is it? How do you set about finding it? How long does
it take to get there? What does it think? What does it do? What does
it want? Oblige me with specimens of its art and literature." Silence.
"Till you do, my opinions will be as follows: There is no great world at
all, only a little earth, for ever isolated from the rest of the little
solar system. The earth is full of tiny societies, and Cambridge is one
of them. All the societies are narrow, but some are good and some are
bad--just as one house is beautiful inside and another ugly. Observe the
metaphor of the houses: I am coming back to it. The good societies say,
`I tell you to do this because I am Cambridge.' The bad ones say, `I
tell you to do that because I am the great world, not because I am
'Peckham,' or `Billingsgate,' or `Park Lane,' but `because I am the
great world.' They lie. And fools like you listen to them, and believe
that they are a thing which does not exist and never has existed, and
confuse 'great,' which has no meaning whatever, with 'good,' which means
salvation. Look at this great wreath: it'll be dead tomorrow. Look
at that good flower: it'll come up again next year. Now for the other
metaphor. To compare the world to Cambridge is like comparing the
outsides of houses with the inside of a house. No intellectual effort is
needed, no moral result is attained. You only have to say, 'Oh, what
a difference!' and then come indoors again and exhibit your broadened
mind."

"I never shall come indoors again," said Rickie. "That's the whole
point." And his voice began to quiver. "It's well enough for those
who'll get a Fellowship, but in a few weeks I shall go down. In a few
years it'll be as if I've never been up. It matters very much to me what
the world is like. I can't answer your questions about it; and that's
no loss to you, but so much the worse for me. And then you've got a
house--not a metaphorical one, but a house with father and sisters. I
haven't, and never shall have. There'll never again be a home for me
like Cambridge. I shall only look at the outside of homes. According to
your metaphor, I shall live in the street, and it matters very much to
me what I find there."

"You'll live in another house right enough," said Ansell, rather
uneasily. "Only take care you pick out a decent one. I can't think
why you flop about so helplessly, like a bit of seaweed. In four years
you've taken as much root as any one."

"Where?"

"I should say you've been fortunate in your friends."

"Oh--that!" But he was not cynical--or cynical in a very tender way.
He was thinking of the irony of friendship--so strong it is, and so
fragile. We fly together, like straws in an eddy, to part in the open
stream. Nature has no use for us: she has cut her stuff differently.
Dutiful sons, loving husbands, responsible fathers these are what she
wants, and if we are friends it must be in our spare time. Abram and
Sarai were sorrowful, yet their seed became as sand of the sea, and
distracts the politics of Europe at this moment. But a few verses of
poetry is all that survives of David and Jonathan.

"I wish we were labelled," said Rickie. He wished that all the
confidence and mutual knowledge that is born in such a place as
Cambridge could be organized. People went down into the world saying,
"We know and like each other; we shan't forget." But they did forget,
for man is so made that he cannot remember long without a symbol; he
wished there was a society, a kind of friendship office, where the
marriage of true minds could be registered.

"Why labels?"

"To know each other again."

"I have taught you pessimism splendidly." He looked at his watch.

"What time?"

"Not twelve."

Rickie got up.

"Why go?" He stretched out his hand and caught hold of Rickie's ankle.

"I've got that Miss Pembroke to lunch--that girl whom you say never's
there."

"Then why go? All this week you have pretended Miss Pembroke awaited
you. Wednesday--Miss Pembroke to lunch. Thursday--Miss Pembroke to tea.
Now again--and you didn't even invite her."

"To Cambridge, no. But the Hall man they're stopping with has so many
engagements that she and her friend can often come to me, I'm glad to
say. I don't think I ever told you much, but over two years ago the man
she was going to marry was killed at football. She nearly died of grief.
This visit to Cambridge is almost the first amusement she has felt up to
taking. Oh, they go back tomorrow! Give me breakfast tomorrow."

"All right."

"But I shall see you this evening. I shall be round at your paper on
Schopenhauer. Lemme go."

"Don't go," he said idly. "It's much better for you to talk to me."

"Lemme go, Stewart."

"It's amusing that you're so feeble. You--simply--can't--get--away. I
wish I wanted to bully you."

Rickie laughed, and suddenly over balanced into the grass. Ansell, with
unusual playfulness, held him prisoner. They lay there for few minutes,
talking and ragging aimlessly. Then Rickie seized his opportunity and
jerked away.

"Go, go!" yawned the other. But he was a little vexed, for he was a
young man with great capacity for pleasure, and it pleased him that
morning to be with his friend. The thought of two ladies waiting lunch
did not deter him; stupid women, why shouldn't they wait? Why should
they interfere with their betters? With his ear on the ground he
listened to Rickie's departing steps, and thought, "He wastes a lot of
time keeping engagements. Why will he be pleasant to fools?" And then
he thought, "Why has he turned so unhappy? It isn't as it he's a
philosopher, or tries to solve the riddle of existence. And he's got
money of his own." Thus thinking, he fell asleep.

Meanwhile Rickie hurried away from him, and slackened and stopped, and
hurried again. He was due at the Union in ten minutes, but he could not
bring himself there. He dared not meet Miss Pembroke: he loved her.

The devil must have planned it. They had started so gloriously; she had
been a goddess both in joy and sorrow. She was a goddess still. But
he had dethroned the god whom once he had glorified equally. Slowly,
slowly, the image of Gerald had faded. That was the first step. Rickie
had thought, "No matter. He will be bright again. Just now all the
radiance chances to be in her." And on her he had fixed his eyes. He
thought of her awake. He entertained her willingly in dreams. He found
her in poetry and music and in the sunset. She made him kind and strong.
She made him clever. Through her he kept Cambridge in its proper place,
and lived as a citizen of the great world. But one night he dreamt
that she lay in his arms. This displeased him. He determined to think a
little about Gerald instead. Then the fabric collapsed.

It was hard on Rickie thus to meet the devil. He did not deserve it, for
he was comparatively civilized, and knew that there was nothing shameful
in love. But to love this woman! If only it had been any one else! Love
in return--that he could expect from no one, being too ugly and too
unattractive. But the love he offered would not then have been vile.
The insult to Miss Pembroke, who was consecrated, and whom he had
consecrated, who could still see Gerald, and always would see him,
shining on his everlasting throne this was the crime from the devil,
the crime that no penance would ever purge. She knew nothing. She never
would know. But the crime was registered in heaven.

He had been tempted to confide in Ansell. But to what purpose? He would
say, "I love Miss Pembroke." and Stewart would reply, "You ass." And
then. "I'm never going to tell her." "You ass," again. After all, it
was not a practical question; Agnes would never hear of his fall. If
his friend had been, as he expressed it, "labelled"; if he had been
a father, or still better a brother, one might tell him of the
discreditable passion. But why irritate him for no reason? Thinking "I
am always angling for sympathy; I must stop myself," he hurried onward
to the Union.

He found his guests half way up the stairs, reading the advertisements
of coaches for the Long Vacation. He heard Mrs. Lewin say, "I wonder
what he'll end by doing." A little overacting his part, he apologized
nonchalantly for his lateness.

"It's always the same," cried Agnes. "Last time he forgot I was coming
altogether." She wore a flowered muslin--something indescribably liquid
and cool. It reminded him a little of those swift piercing streams,
neither blue nor green, that gush out of the dolomites. Her face
was clear and brown, like the face of a mountaineer; her hair was so
plentiful that it seemed banked up above it; and her little toque,
though it answered the note of the dress, was almost ludicrous, poised
on so much natural glory. When she moved, the sunlight flashed on her
ear-rings.

He led them up to the luncheon-room. By now he was conscious of his
limitations as a host, and never attempted to entertain ladies in his
lodgings. Moreover, the Union seemed less intimate. It had a faint
flavour of a London club; it marked the undergraduate's nearest approach
to the great world. Amid its waiters and serviettes one felt impersonal,
and able to conceal the private emotions. Rickie felt that if Miss
Pembroke knew one thing about him, she knew everything. During this
visit he took her to no place that he greatly loved.

"Sit down, ladies. Fall to. I'm sorry. I was out towards Coton with a
dreadful friend."

Mrs. Lewin pushed up her veil. She was a typical May-term chaperon,
always pleasant, always hungry, and always tired. Year after year she
came up to Cambridge in a tight silk dress, and year after year she
nearly died of it. Her feet hurt, her limbs were cramped in a canoe,
black spots danced before her eyes from eating too much mayonnaise. But
still she came, if not as a mother as an aunt, if not as an aunt as a
friend. Still she ascended the roof of King's, still she counted the
balls of Clare, still she was on the point of grasping the organization
of the May races. "And who is your friend?" she asked.

"His name is Ansell."

"Well, now, did I see him two years ago--as a bedmaker in something they
did at the Foot Lights? Oh, how I roared."

"You didn't see Mr. Ansell at the Foot Lights," said Agnes, smiling.

"How do you know?" asked Rickie.

"He'd scarcely be so frivolous."

"Do you remember seeing him?"

"For a moment."

What a memory she had! And how splendidly during that moment she had
behaved!

"Isn't he marvellously clever?"

"I believe so."

"Oh, give me clever people!" cried Mrs. Lewin. "They are kindness itself
at the Hall, but I assure you I am depressed at times. One cannot talk
bump-rowing for ever."

"I never hear about him, Rickie; but isn't he really your greatest
friend?"

"I don't go in for greatest friends."

"Do you mean you like us all equally?"

"All differently, those of you I like."

"Ah, you've caught it!" cried Mrs. Lewin. "Mr. Elliot gave it you there
well."

Agnes laughed, and, her elbows on the table, regarded them both through
her fingers--a habit of hers. Then she said, "Can't we see the great Mr.
Ansell?"

"Oh, let's. Or would he frighten me?"

"He would frighten you," said Rickie. "He's a trifle weird."

"My good Rickie, if you knew the deathly dullness of Sawston--every
one saying the proper thing at the proper time, I so proper, Herbert
so proper! Why, weirdness is the one thing I long for! Do arrange
something."

"I'm afraid there's no opportunity. Ansell goes some vast bicycle ride
this afternoon; this evening you're tied up at the Hall; and tomorrow
you go."

"But there's breakfast tomorrow," said Agnes. "Look here, Rickie, bring
Mr. Ansell to breakfast with us at Buoys."

Mrs. Lewin seconded the invitation.

"Bad luck again," said Rickie boldly; "I'm already fixed up for
breakfast. I'll tell him of your very kind intention."

"Let's have him alone," murmured Agnes.

"My dear girl, I should die through the floor! Oh, it'll be all right
about breakfast. I rather think we shall get asked this evening by that
shy man who has the pretty rooms in Trinity."

"Oh, very well. Where is it you breakfast, Rickie?"

He faltered. "To Ansell's, it is--" It seemed as if he was making some
great admission. So self-conscious was he, that he thought the two women
exchanged glances. Had Agnes already explored that part of him that did
not belong to her? Would another chance step reveal the part that did?
He asked them abruptly what they would like to do after lunch.

"Anything," said Mrs. Lewin,--"anything in the world."

A walk? A boat? Ely? A drive? Some objection was raised to each. "To
tell the truth," she said at last, "I do feel a wee bit tired, and what
occurs to me is this. You and Agnes shall leave me here and have no more
bother. I shall be perfectly happy snoozling in one of these delightful
drawing-room chairs. Do what you like, and then pick me up after it."

"Alas, it's against regulations," said Rickie. "The Union won't trust
lady visitors on its premises alone."

"But who's to know I'm alone? With a lot of men in the drawing-room,
how's each to know that I'm not with the others?"

"That would shock Rickie," said Agnes, laughing. "He's frightfully
high-principled."

"No, I'm not," said Rickie, thinking of his recent shiftiness over
breakfast.

"Then come for a walk with me. I want exercise. Some connection of ours
was once rector of Madingley. I shall walk out and see the church."

Mrs. Lewin was accordingly left in the Union.

"This is jolly!" Agnes exclaimed as she strode along the somewhat
depressing road that leads out of Cambridge past the observatory. "Do I
go too fast?"

"No, thank you. I get stronger every year. If it wasn't for the look of
the thing, I should be quite happy."

"But you don't care for the look of the thing. It's only ignorant people
who do that, surely."

"Perhaps. I care. I like people who are well-made and beautiful. They
are of some use in the world. I understand why they are there. I cannot
understand why the ugly and crippled are there, however healthy they
may feel inside. Don't you know how Turner spoils his pictures by
introducing a man like a bolster in the foreground? Well, in actual life
every landscape is spoilt by men of worse shapes still."

"You sound like a bolster with the stuffing out." They laughed. She
always blew his cobwebs away like this, with a puff of humorous mountain
air. Just now the associations he attached to her were various--she
reminded him of a heroine of Meredith's--but a heroine at the end of the
book. All had been written about her. She had played her mighty part,
and knew that it was over. He and he alone was not content, and wrote
for her daily a trivial and impossible sequel.

Last time they had talked about Gerald. But that was some six months
ago, when things felt easier. Today Gerald was the faintest blur.
Fortunately the conversation turned to Mr. Pembroke and to education.
Did women lose a lot by not knowing Greek? "A heap," said Rickie,
roughly. But modern languages? Thus they got to Germany, which he had
visited last Easter with Ansell; and thence to the German Emperor, and
what a to-do he made; and from him to our own king (still Prince of
Wales), who had lived while an undergraduate at Madingley Hall. Here it
was. And all the time he thought, "It is hard on her. She has no right
to be walking with me. She would be ill with disgust if she knew. It is
hard on her to be loved."

They looked at the Hall, and went inside the pretty little church. Some
Arundel prints hung upon the pillars, and Agnes expressed the opinion
that pictures inside a place of worship were a pity. Rickie did not
agree with this. He said again that nothing beautiful was ever to be
regretted.

"You're cracked on beauty," she whispered--they were still inside the
church. "Do hurry up and write something."

"Something beautiful?"

"I believe you can. I'm going to lecture you seriously all the way home.
Take care that you don't waste your life."

They continued the conversation outside. "But I've got to hate my own
writing. I believe that most people come to that stage--not so early
though. What I write is too silly. It can't happen. For instance, a
stupid vulgar man is engaged to a lovely young lady. He wants her to
live in the towns, but she only cares for woods. She shocks him this way
and that, but gradually he tames her, and makes her nearly as dull as
he is. One day she has a last explosion--over the snobby wedding
presents--and flies out of the drawing-room window, shouting, 'Freedom
and truth!' Near the house is a little dell full of fir-trees, and she
runs into it. He comes there the next moment. But she's gone."

"Awfully exciting. Where?"

"Oh Lord, she's a Dryad!" cried Rickie, in great disgust. "She's turned
into a tree."

"Rickie, it's very good indeed. The kind of thing has something in it.
Of course you get it all through Greek and Latin. How upset the man must
be when he sees the girl turn."

"He doesn't see her. He never guesses. Such a man could never see a
Dryad."

"So you describe how she turns just before he comes up?"

"No. Indeed I don't ever say that she does turn. I don't use the word
'Dryad' once."

"I think you ought to put that part plainly. Otherwise, with such an
original story, people might miss the point. Have you had any luck with
it?"

"Magazines? I haven't tried. I know what the stuff's worth. You see, a
year or two ago I had a great idea of getting into touch with Nature,
just as the Greeks were in touch; and seeing England so beautiful, I
used to pretend that her trees and coppices and summer fields of parsley
were alive. It's funny enough now, but it wasn't funny then, for I got
in such a state that I believed, actually believed, that Fauns lived in
a certain double hedgerow near the Cog Magogs, and one evening I walked
a mile sooner than go through it alone."

"Good gracious!" She laid her hand on his shoulder.

He moved to the other side of the road. "It's all right now. I've
changed those follies for others. But while I had them I began to write,
and even now I keep on writing, though I know better. I've got quite a
pile of little stories, all harping on this ridiculous idea of getting
into touch with Nature."

"I wish you weren't so modest. It's simply splendid as an idea.
Though--but tell me about the Dryad who was engaged to be married. What
was she like?"

"I can show you the dell in which the young person disappeared. We pass
it on the right in a moment."

"It does seem a pity that you don't make something of your talents. It
seems such a waste to write little stories and never publish them. You
must have enough for a book. Life is so full in our days that short
stories are the very thing; they get read by people who'd never tackle a
novel. For example, at our Dorcas we tried to read out a long affair
by Henry James--Herbert saw it recommended in 'The Times.' There was no
doubt it was very good, but one simply couldn't remember from one week
to another what had happened. So now our aim is to get something that
just lasts the hour. I take you seriously, Rickie, and that is why I am
so offensive. You are too modest. People who think they can do nothing
so often do nothing. I want you to plunge."

It thrilled him like a trumpet-blast. She took him seriously. Could he
but thank her for her divine affability! But the words would stick in
his throat, or worse still would bring other words along with them. His
breath came quickly, for he seldom spoke of his writing, and no one, not
even Ansell, had advised him to plunge.

"But do you really think that I could take up literature?"

"Why not? You can try. Even if you fail, you can try. Of course we think
you tremendously clever; and I met one of your dons at tea, and he said
that your degree was not in the least a proof of your abilities: he said
that you knocked up and got flurried in examinations. Oh!"--her cheek
flushed,--"I wish I was a man. The whole world lies before them. They
can do anything. They aren't cooped up with servants and tea parties and
twaddle. But where's this dell where the Dryad disappeared?"

"We've passed it." He had meant to pass it. It was too beautiful. All
he had read, all he had hoped for, all he had loved, seemed to quiver
in its enchanted air. It was perilous. He dared not enter it with such a
woman.

"How long ago?" She turned back. "I don't want to miss the dell. Here
it must be," she added after a few moments, and sprang up the green bank
that hid the entrance from the road. "Oh, what a jolly place!"

"Go right in if you want to see it," said Rickie, and did not offer to
go with her. She stood for a moment looking at the view, for a few steps
will increase a view in Cambridgeshire. The wind blew her dress against
her. Then, like a cataract again, she vanished pure and cool into the
dell.

The young man thought of her feelings no longer. His heart throbbed
louder and louder, and seemed to shake him to pieces. "Rickie!"

She was calling from the dell. For an answer he sat down where he was,
on the dust-bespattered margin. She could call as loud as she liked. The
devil had done much, but he should not take him to her.

"Rickie!"--and it came with the tones of an angel. He drove his fingers
into his ears, and invoked the name of Gerald. But there was no sign,
neither angry motion in the air nor hint of January mist. June--fields
of June, sky of June, songs of June. Grass of June beneath him, grass of
June over the tragedy he had deemed immortal. A bird called out of the
dell: "Rickie!"

A bird flew into the dell.

"Did you take me for the Dryad?" she asked. She was sitting down with
his head on her lap. He had laid it there for a moment before he went
out to die, and she had not let him take it away.

"I prayed you might not be a woman," he whispered.

"Darling, I am very much a woman. I do not vanish into groves and trees.
I thought you would never come."

"Did you expect--?"

"I hoped. I called hoping."

Inside the dell it was neither June nor January. The chalk walls barred
out the seasons, and the fir-trees did not seem to feel their passage.
Only from time to time the odours of summer slipped in from the wood
above, to comment on the waxing year. She bent down to touch him with
her lips.

He started, and cried passionately, "Never forget that your greatest
thing is over. I have forgotten: I am too weak. You shall never forget.
What I said to you then is greater than what I say to you now. What he
gave you then is greater than anything you will get from me."

She was frightened. Again she had the sense of something abnormal. Then
she said, "What is all this nonsense?" and folded him in her arms.



VIII

Ansell stood looking at his breakfast-table, which was laid for four
instead of two. His bedmaker, equally peevish, explained how it had
happened. Last night, at one in the morning, the porter had been awoke
with a note for the kitchens, and in that note Mr. Elliot said that all
these things were to be sent to Mr. Ansell's.

"The fools have sent the original order as well. Here's the lemon-sole
for two. I can't move for food."

"The note being ambiguous, the Kitchens judged best to send it all."
She spoke of the kitchens in a half-respectful, half-pitying way, much
as one speaks of Parliament.

"Who's to pay for it?" He peeped into the new dishes. Kidneys entombed
in an omelette, hot roast chicken in watery gravy, a glazed but pallid
pie.

"And who's to wash it up?" said the bedmaker to her help outside.

Ansell had disputed late last night concerning Schopenhauer, and was a
little cross and tired. He bounced over to Tilliard, who kept opposite.
Tilliard was eating gooseberry jam.

"Did Elliot ask you to breakfast with me?"

"No," said Tilliard mildly.

"Well, you'd better come, and bring every one you know."

So Tilliard came, bearing himself a little formally, for he was not
very intimate with his neighbour. Out of the window they called to
Widdrington. But he laid his hand on his stomach, thus indicating it was
too late.

"Who's to pay for it?" repeated Ansell, as a man appeared from the
Buttery carrying coffee on a bright tin tray.

"College coffee! How nice!" remarked Tilliard, who was cutting the pie.
"But before term ends you must come and try my new machine. My sister
gave it me. There is a bulb at the top, and as the water boils--"

"He might have counter-ordered the lemon-sole. That's Rickie all over.
Violently economical, and then loses his head, and all the things go
bad."

"Give them to the bedder while they're hot." This was done. She accepted
them dispassionately, with the air of one who lives without nourishment.
Tilliard continued to describe his sister's coffee machine.

"What's that?" They could hear panting and rustling on the stairs.

"It sounds like a lady," said Tilliard fearfully. He slipped the piece
of pie back. It fell into position like a brick.

"Is it here? Am I right? Is it here?" The door opened and in came Mrs.
Lewin. "Oh horrors! I've made a mistake."

"That's all right," said Ansell awkwardly.

"I wanted Mr. Elliot. Where are they?"

"We expect Mr. Elliot every-moment," said Tilliard.

"Don't tell me I'm right," cried Mrs. Lewin, "and that you're the
terrifying Mr. Ansell." And, with obvious relief, she wrung Tilliard
warmly by the hand.

"I'm Ansell," said Ansell, looking very uncouth and grim.

"How stupid of me not to know it," she gasped, and would have gone on to
I know not what, but the door opened again. It was Rickie.

"Here's Miss Pembroke," he said. "I am going to marry her."

There was a profound silence.

"We oughtn't to have done things like this," said Agnes, turning to Mrs.
Lewin. "We have no right to take Mr. Ansell by surprise. It is Rickie's
fault. He was that obstinate. He would bring us. He ought to be
horsewhipped."

"He ought, indeed," said Tilliard pleasantly, and bolted. Not till he
gained his room did he realize that he had been less apt than usual. As
for Ansell, the first thing he said was, "Why didn't you counter-order
the lemon-sole?"

In such a situation Mrs. Lewin was of priceless value. She led the way
to the table, observing, "I quite agree with Miss Pembroke. I loathe
surprises. Never shall I forget my horror when the knife-boy painted the
dove's cage with the dove inside. He did it as a surprise. Poor Parsival
nearly died. His feathers were bright green!"

"Well, give me the lemon-soles," said Rickie. "I like them."

"The bedder's got them."

"Well, there you are! What's there to be annoyed about?"

"And while the cage was drying we put him among the bantams. They had
been the greatest allies. But I suppose they took him for a parrot or a
hawk, or something that bantams hate for while his cage was drying they
picked out his feathers, and PICKED and PICKED out his feathers, till he
was perfectly bald. 'Hugo, look,' said I. 'This is the end of Parsival.
Let me have no more surprises.' He burst into tears."

Thus did Mrs. Lewin create an atmosphere. At first it seemed unreal,
but gradually they got used to it, and breathed scarcely anything else
throughout the meal. In such an atmosphere everything seemed of small
and equal value, and the engagement of Rickie and Agnes like the
feathers of Parsival, fluttered lightly to the ground. Ansell was
generally silent. He was no match for these two quite clever women. Only
once was there a hitch.

They had been talking gaily enough about the betrothal when Ansell
suddenly interrupted with, "When is the marriage?"

"Mr. Ansell," said Agnes, blushing, "I wish you hadn't asked that. That
part's dreadful. Not for years, as far as we can see."

But Rickie had not seen as far. He had not talked to her of this at
all. Last night they had spoken only of love. He exclaimed, "Oh,
Agnes-don't!" Mrs. Lewin laughed roguishly.

"Why this delay?" asked Ansell.

Agnes looked at Rickie, who replied, "I must get money, worse luck."

"I thought you'd got money."

He hesitated, and then said, "I must get my foot on the ladder, then."

Ansell began with, "On which ladder?" but Mrs. Lewin, using the
privilege of her sex, exclaimed, "Not another word. If there's a thing I
abominate, it is plans. My head goes whirling at once." What she really
abominated was questions, and she saw that Ansell was turning serious.
To appease him, she put on her clever manner and asked him about
Germany. How had it impressed him? Were we so totally unfitted to
repel invasion? Was not German scholarship overestimated? He replied
discourteously, but he did reply; and if she could have stopped him
thinking, her triumph would have been complete.

When they rose to go, Agnes held Ansell's hand for a moment in her own.

"Good-bye," she said. "It was very unconventional of us to come as we
did, but I don't think any of us are conventional people."

He only replied, "Good-bye." The ladies started off. Rickie lingered
behind to whisper, "I would have it so. I would have you begin square
together. I can't talk yet--I've loved her for years--can't think what
she's done it for. I'm going to write short stories. I shall start this
afternoon. She declares there may be something in me."

As soon as he had left, Tilliard burst in, white with agitation, and
crying, "Did you see my awful faux pas--about the horsewhip? What shall
I do? I must call on Elliot. Or had I better write?"

"Miss Pembroke will not mind," said Ansell gravely. "She is
unconventional." He knelt in an arm-chair and hid his face in the back.

"It was like a bomb," said Tilliard.

"It was meant to be."

"I do feel a fool. What must she think?"

"Never mind, Tilliard. You've not been as big a fool as myself. At all
events, you told her he must be horsewhipped."

Tilliard hummed a little tune. He hated anything nasty, and there was
nastiness in Ansell. "What did you tell her?" he asked.

"Nothing."

"What do you think of it?"

"I think: Damn those women."

"Ah, yes. One hates one's friends to get engaged. It makes one feel so
old: I think that is one of the reasons. The brother just above me has
lately married, and my sister was quite sick about it, though the thing
was suitable in every way."

"Damn THESE women, then," said Ansell, bouncing round in the chair.
"Damn these particular women."

"They looked and spoke like ladies."

"Exactly. Their diplomacy was ladylike. Their lies were ladylike.
They've caught Elliot in a most ladylike way. I saw it all during the
one moment we were natural. Generally we were clattering after the
married one, whom--like a fool--I took for a fool. But for one moment we
were natural, and during that moment Miss Pembroke told a lie, and made
Rickie believe it was the truth."

"What did she say?"

"She said `we see' instead of 'I see.'"

Tilliard burst into laughter. This jaundiced young philosopher, with his
kinky view of life, was too much for him.

"She said 'we see,'" repeated Ansell, "instead of 'I see,' and she made
him believe that it was the truth. She caught him and makes him believe
that he caught her. She came to see me and makes him think that it is
his idea. That is what I mean when I say that she is a lady."

"You are too subtle for me. My dull eyes could only see two happy
people."

"I never said they weren't happy."

"Then, my dear Ansell, why are you so cut up? It's beastly when a friend
marries,--and I grant he's rather young,--but I should say it's the best
thing for him. A decent woman--and you have proved not one thing against
her--a decent woman will keep him up to the mark and stop him getting
slack. She'll make him responsible and manly, for much as I like Rickie,
I always find him a little effeminate. And, really,"--his voice grew
sharper, for he was irritated by Ansell's conceit, "and, really, you
talk as if you were mixed up in the affair. They pay a civil visit to
your rooms, and you see nothing but dark plots and challenges to war."

"War!" cried Ansell, crashing his fists together. "It's war, then!"

"Oh, what a lot of tommy-rot," said Tilliard. "Can't a man and woman get
engaged? My dear boy--excuse me talking like this--what on earth is it
to do with us?"

"We're his friends, and I hope we always shall be, but we shan't keep
his friendship by fighting. We're bound to fall into the background.
Wife first, friends some way after. You may resent the order, but it is
ordained by nature."

"The point is, not what's ordained by nature or any other fool, but
what's right."

"You are hopelessly unpractical," said Tilliard, turning away. "And let
me remind you that you've already given away your case by acknowledging
that they're happy."

"She is happy because she has conquered; he is happy because he has
at last hung all the world's beauty on to a single peg. He was always
trying to do it. He used to call the peg humanity. Will either of these
happinesses last? His can't. Hers only for a time. I fight this woman
not only because she fights me, but because I foresee the most appalling
catastrophe. She wants Rickie, partly to replace another man whom she
lost two years ago, partly to make something out of him. He is to write.
In time she will get sick of this. He won't get famous. She will only
see how thin he is and how lame. She will long for a jollier husband,
and I don't blame her. And, having made him thoroughly miserable and
degraded, she will bolt--if she can do it like a lady."

Such were the opinions of Stewart Ansell.



IX

Seven letters written in June:--


Cambridge

Dear Rickie,

I would rather write, and you can guess what kind of letter this is
when I say it is a fair copy: I have been making rough drafts all
the morning. When I talk I get angry, and also at times try to be
clever--two reasons why I fail to get attention paid to me. This is a
letter of the prudent sort. If it makes you break off the engagement,
its work is done. You are not a person who ought to marry at all. You
are unfitted in body: that we once discussed. You are also unfitted in
soul: you want and you need to like many people, and a man of that sort
ought not to marry. "You never were attached to that great sect" who
can like one person only, and if you try to enter it you will find
destruction. I have read in books and I cannot afford to despise books,
they are all that I have to go by--that men and women desire different
things. Man wants to love mankind; woman wants to love one man. When she
has him her work is over. She is the emissary of Nature, and Nature's
bidding has been fulfilled. But man does not care a damn for Nature--or
at least only a very little damn. He cares for a hundred things besides,
and the more civilized he is the more he will care for these other
hundred things, and demand not only--a wife and children, but also
friends, and work, and spiritual freedom.

I believe you to be extraordinarily civilized.--Yours ever,

S.A.


Shelthorpe, 9 Sawston Park Road, Sawston

Dear Ansell,

But I'm in love--a detail you've forgotten. I can't listen to English
Essays. The wretched Agnes may be an "emissary of Nature," but I only
grinned when I read it. I may be extraordinarily civilized, but I don't
feel so; I'm in love, and I've found a woman to love me, and I mean
to have the hundred other things as well. She wants me to have
them--friends and work, and spiritual freedom, and everything. You
and your books miss this, because your books are too sedate. Read
poetry--not only Shelley. Understand Beatrice, and Clara Middleton, and
Brunhilde in the first scene of Gotterdammerung. Understand Goethe when
he says "the eternal feminine leads us on," and don't write another
English Essay.--Yours ever affectionately,

R.E.


Cambridge

Dear Rickie:

What am I to say? "Understand Xanthippe, and Mrs. Bennet, and Elsa in
the question scene of Lohengrin"? "Understand Euripides when he says the
eternal feminine leads us a pretty dance"? I shall say nothing of the
sort. The allusions in this English Essay shall not be literary. My
personal objections to Miss Pembroke are as follows:--(1) She is not
serious. (2) She is not truthful.


Shelthorpe, 9 Sawston Park Road Sawston

My Dear Stewart,

You couldn't know. I didn't know for a moment. But this letter of yours
is the most wonderful thing that has ever happened to me yet--more
wonderful (I don't exaggerate) than the moment when Agnes promised to
marry me. I always knew you liked me, but I never knew how much until
this letter. Up to now I think we have been too much like the strong
heroes in books who feel so much and say so little, and feel all the
more for saying so little. Now that's over and we shall never be that
kind of an ass again. We've hit--by accident--upon something permanent.
You've written to me, "I hate the woman who will be your wife," and
I write back, "Hate her. Can't I love you both?" She will never come
between us, Stewart (She wouldn't wish to, but that's by the way),
because our friendship has now passed beyond intervention. No third
person could break it. We couldn't ourselves, I fancy. We may quarrel
and argue till one of us dies, but the thing is registered. I only wish,
dear man, you could be happier. For me, it's as if a light was suddenly
held behind the world.

R.E.


Shelthorpe, 9 Sawston Park Road, Sawston

Dear Mrs. Lewin,--

The time goes flying, but I am getting to learn my wonderful boy. We
speak a great deal about his work. He has just finished a curious thing
called "Nemi"--about a Roman ship that is actually sunk in some lake. I
cannot think how he describes the things, when he has never seen them.
If, as I hope, he goes to Italy next year, he should turn out something
really good. Meanwhile we are hunting for a publisher. Herbert believes
that a collection of short stories is hard to get published. It is,
after all, better to write one long one.

But you must not think we only talk books. What we say on other topics
cannot so easily be repeated! Oh, Mrs Lewin, he is a dear, and dearer
than ever now that we have him at Sawston. Herbert, in a quiet way,
has been making inquiries about those Cambridge friends of his. Nothing
against them, but they seem to be terribly eccentric. None of them
are good at games, and they spend all their spare time thinking and
discussing. They discuss what one knows and what one never will know and
what one had much better not know. Herbert says it is because they have
not got enough to do.--Ever your grateful and affectionate friend,

Agnes Pembroke


Shelthorpe, 9 Sawston Park Road Sawston

Dear Mr. Silt,--

Thank you for the congratulations, which I have handed over to the
delighted Rickie.

(The congratulations were really addressed to Agnes--a social blunder
which Mr. Pembroke deftly corrects.)

I am sorry that the rumor reached you that I was not pleased. Anything
pleases me that promises my sister's happiness, and I have known your
cousin nearly as long as you have. It will be a very long engagement,
for he must make his way first. The dear boy is not nearly as wealthy as
he supposed; having no tastes, and hardly any expenses, he used to talk
as if he were a millionaire. He must at least double his income before
he can dream of more intimate ties. This has been a bitter pill, but I
am glad to say that they have accepted it bravely.

Hoping that you and Mrs. Silt will profit by your week at Margate.-I
remain, yours very sincerely,

Herbert Pembroke


Cadover, Wilts.

Dear Miss Pembroke,--Agnes--

I hear that you are going to marry my nephew. I have no idea what he is
like, and wonder whether you would bring him that I may find out. Isn't
September rather a nice month? You might have to go to Stone Henge, but
with that exception would be left unmolested. I do hope you will manage
the visit. We met once at Mrs. Lewin's, and I have a very clear
recollection of you.--Believe me, yours sincerely,

Emily Failing



X

The rain tilted a little from the south-west. For the most part it fell
from a grey cloud silently, but now and then the tilt increased, and
a kind of sigh passed over the country as the drops lashed the walls,
trees, shepherds, and other motionless objects that stood in their
slanting career. At times the cloud would descend and visibly embrace
the earth, to which it had only sent messages; and the earth itself
would bring forth clouds--clouds of a whiter breed--which formed in
shallow valleys and followed the courses of the streams. It seemed the
beginning of life. Again God said, "Shall we divide the waters from the
land or not? Was not the firmament labour and glory sufficient?" At all
events it was the beginning of life pastoral, behind which imagination
cannot travel.

Yet complicated people were getting wet--not only the shepherds. For
instance, the piano-tuner was sopping. So was the vicar's wife. So were
the lieutenant and the peevish damsels in his Battleston car. Gallantry,
charity, and art pursued their various missions, perspiring and muddy,
while out on the slopes beyond them stood the eternal man and the
eternal dog, guarding eternal sheep until the world is vegetarian.

Inside an arbour--which faced east, and thus avoided the bad
weather--there sat a complicated person who was dry. She looked at the
drenched world with a pleased expression, and would smile when a cloud
would lay down on the village, or when the rain sighed louder than usual
against her solid shelter. Ink, paperclips, and foolscap paper were
on the table before her, and she could also reach an umbrella, a
waterproof, a walking-stick, and an electric bell. Her age was between
elderly and old, and her forehead was wrinkled with an expression of
slight but perpetual pain. But the lines round her mouth indicated that
she had laughed a great deal during her life, just as the clean tight
skin round her eyes perhaps indicated that she had not often cried. She
was dressed in brown silk. A brown silk shawl lay most becomingly over
her beautiful hair.

After long thought she wrote on the paper in front of her, "The subject
of this memoir first saw the light at Wolverhampton on May the 14th,
1842." She laid down her pen and said "Ugh!" A robin hopped in and she
welcomed him. A sparrow followed and she stamped her foot. She watched
some thick white water which was sliding like a snake down the gutter
of the gravel path. It had just appeared. It must have escaped from a
hollow in the chalk up behind. The earth could absorb no longer. The
lady did not think of all this, for she hated questions of whence and
wherefore, and the ways of the earth ("our dull stepmother") bored her
unspeakably. But the water, just the snake of water, was amusing, and
she flung her golosh at it to dam it up. Then she wrote feverishly, "The
subject of this memoir first saw the light in the middle of the night.
It was twenty to eleven. His pa was a parson, but he was not his pa's
son, and never went to heaven." There was the sound of a train, and
presently white smoke appeared, rising laboriously through the heavy
air. It distracted her, and for about a quarter of an hour she sat
perfectly still, doing nothing. At last she pushed the spoilt paper
aside, took afresh piece, and was beginning to write, "On May the 14th,
1842," when there was a crunch on the gravel, and a furious voice said,
"I am sorry for Flea Thompson."

"I daresay I am sorry for him too," said the lady; her voice was languid
and pleasant. "Who is he?"

"Flea's a liar, and the next time we meet he'll be a football." Off
slipped a sodden ulster. He hung it up angrily upon a peg: the arbour
provided several.

"But who is he, and why has he that disastrous name?"

"Flea? Fleance. All the Thompsons are named out of Shakespeare. He
grazes the Rings."

"Ah, I see. A pet lamb."

"Lamb! Shepherd!"

"One of my Shepherds?"

"The last time I go with his sheep. But not the last time he sees me. I
am sorry for him. He dodged me today."

"Do you mean to say"--she became animated--"that you have been out in
the wet keeping the sheep of Flea Thompson?"

"I had to." He blew on his fingers and took off his cap. Water trickled
over his unshaven cheeks. His hair was so wet that it seemed worked upon
his scalp in bronze.

"Get away, bad dog!" screamed the lady, for he had given himself a shake
and spattered her dress with water. He was a powerful boy of twenty,
admirably muscular, but rather too broad for his height. People called
him "Podge" until they were dissuaded. Then they called him "Stephen" or
"Mr. Wonham." Then he said, "You can call me Podge if you like."

"As for Flea--!" he began tempestuously. He sat down by her, and with
much heavy breathing told the story,--"Flea has a girl at Wintersbridge,
and I had to go with his sheep while he went to see her. Two hours. We
agreed. Half an hour to go, an hour to kiss his girl, and half an hour
back--and he had my bike. Four hours! Four hours and seven minutes I was
on the Rings, with a fool of a dog, and sheep doing all they knew to get
the turnips."

"My farm is a mystery to me," said the lady, stroking her fingers.

"Some day you must really take me to see it. It must be like a Gilbert
and Sullivan opera, with a chorus of agitated employers. How is it that
I have escaped? Why have I never been summoned to milk the cows, or flay
the pigs, or drive the young bullocks to the pasture?"

He looked at her with astonishingly blue eyes--the only dry things he
had about him. He could not see into her: she would have puzzled an
older and clever man. He may have seen round her.

"A thing of beauty you are not. But I sometimes think you are a joy for
ever."

"I beg your pardon?"

"Oh, you understand right enough," she exclaimed irritably, and then
smiled, for he was conceited, and did not like being told that he was
not a thing of beauty. "Large and steady feet," she continued, "have
this disadvantage--you can knock down a man, but you will never knock
down a woman."

"I don't know what you mean. I'm not likely--"

"Oh, never mind--never, never mind. I was being funny. I repent. Tell me
about the sheep. Why did you go with them?"

"I did tell you. I had to."

"But why?"

"He had to see his girl."

"But why?"

His eyes shot past her again. It was so obvious that the man had to see
his girl. For two hours though--not for four hours seven minutes.

"Did you have any lunch?"

"I don't hold with regular meals."

"Did you have a book?"

"I don't hold with books in the open. None of the older men read."

"Did you commune with yourself, or don't you hold with that?"

"Oh Lord, don't ask me!"

"You distress me. You rob the Pastoral of its lingering romance. Is
there no poetry and no thought in England? Is there no one, in all these
downs, who warbles with eager thought the Doric lay?"

"Chaps sing to themselves at times, if you mean that."

"I dream of Arcady. I open my eyes. Wiltshire. Of Amaryllis: Flea
Thompson's girl. Of the pensive shepherd, twitching his mantle blue: you
in an ulster. Aren't you sorry for me?"

"May I put in a pipe?"

"By all means put a pipe in. In return, tell me of what you were
thinking for the four hours and the seven minutes."

He laughed shyly. "You do ask a man such questions."

"Did you simply waste the time?"

"I suppose so."

"I thought that Colonel Robert Ingersoll says you must be strenuous."

At the sound of this name he whisked open a little cupboard, and
declaring, "I haven't a moment to spare," took out of it a pile of
"Clarion" and other reprints, adorned as to their covers with bald or
bearded apostles of humanity. Selecting a bald one, he began at once
to read, occasionally exclaiming, "That's got them," "That's knocked
Genesis," with similar ejaculations of an aspiring mind. She glanced
at the pile. Reran, minus the style. Darwin, minus the modesty. A
comic edition of the book of Job, by "Excelsior," Pittsburgh, Pa. "The
Beginning of Life," with diagrams. "Angel or Ape?" by Mrs. Julia P.
Chunk. She was amused, and wondered idly what was passing within his
narrow but not uninteresting brain. Did he suppose that he was going to
"find out"? She had tried once herself, but had since subsided into a
sprightly orthodoxy. Why didn't he read poetry, instead of wasting his
time between books like these and country like that?

The cloud parted, and the increase of light made her look up. Over the
valley she saw a grave sullen down, and on its flanks a little brown
smudge--her sheep, together with her shepherd, Fleance Thompson,
returned to his duties at last. A trickle of water came through the
arbour roof. She shrieked in dismay.

"That's all right," said her companion, moving her chair, but still
keeping his place in his book.

She dried up the spot on the manuscript. Then she wrote: "Anthony
Eustace Failing, the subject of this memoir, was born at Wolverhampton."
But she wrote no more. She was fidgety. Another drop fell from the roof.
Likewise an earwig. She wished she had not been so playful in flinging
her golosh into the path. The boy who was overthrowing religion breathed
somewhat heavily as he did so. Another earwig. She touched the electric
bell.

"I'm going in," she observed. "It's far too wet." Again the cloud parted
and caused her to add, "Weren't you rather kind to Flea?" But he was
deep in the book. He read like a poor person, with lips apart and a
finger that followed the print. At times he scratched his ear, or ran
his tongue along a straggling blonde moustache. His face had after all a
certain beauty: at all events the colouring was regal--a steady crimson
from throat to forehead: the sun and the winds had worked on him daily
ever since he was born. "The face of a strong man," thought the lady.
"Let him thank his stars he isn't a silent strong man, or I'd turn
him into the gutter." Suddenly it struck her that he was like an Irish
terrier. He worried infinity as if it was a bone. Gnashing his teeth,
he tried to carry the eternal subtleties by violence. As a man he often
bored her, for he was always saying and doing the same things. But as
a philosopher he really was a joy for ever, an inexhaustible buffoon.
Taking up her pen, she began to caricature him. She drew a rabbit-warren
where rabbits were at play in four dimensions. Before she had introduced
the principal figure, she was interrupted by the footman. He had come up
from the house to answer the bell. On seeing her he uttered a respectful
cry.

"Madam! Are you here? I am very sorry. I looked for you everywhere. Mr.
Elliot and Miss Pembroke arrived nearly an hour ago."

"Oh dear, oh dear!" exclaimed Mrs. Failing. "Take these papers. Where's
the umbrella? Mr. Stephen will hold it over me. You hurry back and
apologize. Are they happy?"

"Miss Pembroke inquired after you, madam."

"Have they had tea?"

"Yes, madam."

"Leighton!"

"Yes, sir."

"I believe you knew she was here all the time. You didn't want to wet
your pretty skin."

"You must not call me 'she' to the servants," said Mrs. Failing as they
walked away, she limping with a stick, he holding a great umbrella over
her. "I will not have it." Then more pleasantly, "And don't tell him
he lies. We all lie. I knew quite well they were coming by the four-six
train. I saw it pass."

"That reminds me. Another child run over at the Roman crossing.
Whish--bang--dead."

"Oh my foot! Oh my foot, my foot!" said Mrs. Failing, and paused to take
breath.

"Bad?" he asked callously.

Leighton, with bowed head, passed them with the manuscript and
disappeared among the laurels. The twinge of pain, which had been
slight, passed away, and they proceeded, descending a green airless
corridor which opened into the gravel drive.

"Isn't it odd," said Mrs. Failing, "that the Greeks should be
enthusiastic about laurels--that Apollo should pursue any one who could
possibly turn into such a frightful plant? What do you make of Rickie?"

"Oh, I don't know."

"Shall I lend you his story to read?"

He made no reply.

"Don't you think, Stephen, that a person in your precarious position
ought to be civil to my relatives?"

"Sorry, Mrs. Failing. I meant to be civil. I only hadn't--anything to
say."

She a laughed. "Are you a dear boy? I sometimes wonder; or are you a
brute?"

Again he had nothing to say. Then she laughed more mischievously, and
said--

"How can you be either, when you are a philosopher? Would you mind
telling me--I am so anxious to learn--what happens to people when they
die?"

"Don't ask ME." He knew by bitter experience that she was making fun of
him.

"Oh, but I do ask you. Those paper books of yours are so up-to-date.
For instance, what has happened to the child you say was killed on the
line?"

The rain increased. The drops pattered hard on the leaves, and outside
the corridor men and women were struggling, however stupidly, with the
facts of life. Inside it they wrangled. She teased the boy, and laughed
at his theories, and proved that no man can be an agnostic who has a
sense of humour. Suddenly she stopped, not through any skill of his, but
because she had remembered some words of Bacon: "The true atheist is he
whose hands are cauterized by holy things." She thought of her distant
youth. The world was not so humorous then, but it had been more
important. For a moment she respected her companion, and determined to
vex him no more.

They left the shelter of the laurels, crossed the broad drive, and were
inside the house at last. She had got quite wet, for the weather would
not let her play the simple life with impunity. As for him, he seemed a
piece of the wet.

"Look here," she cried, as he hurried up to his attic, "don't shave!"

He was delighted with the permission.

"I have an idea that Miss Pembroke is of the type that pretends to be
unconventional and really isn't. I want to see how she takes it. Don't
shave."

In the drawing-room she could hear the guests conversing in the subdued
tones of those who have not been welcomed. Having changed her dress and
glanced at the poems of Milton, she went to them, with uplifted hands of
apology and horror.

"But I must have tea," she announced, when they had assured her that
they understood. "Otherwise I shall start by being cross. Agnes, stop
me. Give me tea."

Agnes, looking pleased, moved to the table and served her hostess.
Rickie followed with a pagoda of sandwiches and little cakes.

"I feel twenty-seven years younger. Rickie, you are so like your father.
I feel it is twenty-seven years ago, and that he is bringing your mother
to see me for the first time. It is curious--almost terrible--to see
history repeating itself."

The remark was not tactful.

"I remember that visit well," she continued thoughtfully, "I suppose it
was a wonderful visit, though we none of us knew it at the time. We all
fell in love with your mother. I wish she would have fallen in love with
us. She couldn't bear me, could she?"

"I never heard her say so, Aunt Emily."

"No; she wouldn't. I am sure your father said so, though. My dear boy,
don't look so shocked. Your father and I hated each other. He said so,
I said so, I say so; say so too. Then we shall start fair.--Just a
cocoanut cake.--Agnes, don't you agree that it's always best to speak
out?"

"Oh, rather, Mrs. Failing. But I'm shockingly straightforward."

"So am I," said the lady. "I like to get down to the bedrock.--Hullo!
Slippers? Slippers in the drawingroom?"

A young man had come in silently. Agnes observed with a feeling of
regret that he had not shaved. Rickie, after a moment's hesitation,
remembered who it was, and shook hands with him. "You've grown since I
saw you last."

He showed his teeth amiably.

"How long was that?" asked Mrs. Failing.

"Three years, wasn't it? Came over from the Ansells--friends."

"How disgraceful, Rickie! Why don't you come and see me oftener?"

He could not retort that she never asked him.

"Agnes will make you come. Oh, let me introduce Mr. Wonham--Miss
Pembroke."

"I am deputy hostess," said Agnes. "May I give you some tea?"

"Thank you, but I have had a little beer."

"It is one of the shepherds," said Mrs. Failing, in low tones.

Agnes smiled rather wildly. Mrs. Lewin had warned her that Cadover
was an extraordinary place, and that one must never be astonished at
anything. A shepherd in the drawing-room! No harm. Still one ought
to know whether it was a shepherd or not. At all events he was in
gentleman's clothing. She was anxious not to start with a blunder, and
therefore did not talk to the young fellow, but tried to gather what he
was from the demeanour of Rickie.

"I am sure, Mrs. Failing, that you need not talk of 'making' people come
to Cadover. There will be no difficulty, I should say."

"Thank you, my dear. Do you know who once said those exact words to me?"

"Who?"

"Rickie's mother."

"Did she really?"

"My sister-in-law was a dear. You will have heard Rickie's praises, but
now you must hear mine. I never knew a woman who was so unselfish and
yet had such capacities for life."

"Does one generally exclude the other?" asked Rickie.

"Unselfish people, as a rule, are deathly dull. They have no colour.
They think of other people because it is easier. They give money because
they are too stupid or too idle to spend it properly on themselves.
That was the beauty of your mother--she gave away, but she also spent on
herself, or tried to."

The light faded out of the drawing-room, in spite of it being September
and only half-past six. From her low chair Agnes could see the trees by
the drive, black against a blackening sky. That drive was half a mile
long, and she was praising its gravelled surface when Rickie called in a
voice of alarm, "I say, when did our train arrive?"

"Four-six."

"I said so."

"It arrived at four-six on the time-table," said Mr. Wonham. "I want to
know when it got to the station?"

"I tell you again it was punctual. I tell you I looked at my watch. I
can do no more."

Agnes was amazed. Was Rickie mad? A minute ago and they were boring each
other over dogs. What had happened?

"Now, now! Quarrelling already?" asked Mrs. Failing.

The footman, bringing a lamp, lit up two angry faces.

"He says--"

"He says--"

"He says we ran over a child."

"So you did. You ran over a child in the village at four-seven by my
watch. Your train was late. You couldn't have got to the station till
four-ten."

"I don't believe it. We had passed the village by four-seven. Agnes,
hadn't we passed the village? It must have been an express that ran over
the child."

"Now is it likely"--he appealed to the practical world--"is it likely
that the company would run a stopping train and then an express three
minutes after it?"

"A child--" said Rickie. "I can't believe that the train killed a
child." He thought of their journey. They were alone in the carriage.
As the train slackened speed he had caught her for a moment in his arms.
The rain beat on the windows, but they were in heaven.

"You've got to believe it," said the other, and proceeded to "rub it
in." His healthy, irritable face drew close to Rickie's. "Two children
were kicking and screaming on the Roman crossing. Your train, being
late, came down on them. One of them was pulled off the line, but the
other was caught. How will you get out of that?"

"And how will you get out of it?" cried Mrs. Failing, turning the tables
on him. "Where's the child now? What has happened to its soul? You must
know, Agnes, that this young gentleman is a philosopher."

"Oh, drop all that," said Mr. Wonham, suddenly collapsing.

"Drop it? Where? On my nice carpet?"

"I hate philosophy," remarked Agnes, trying to turn the subject, for she
saw that it made Rickie unhappy.

"So do I. But I daren't say so before Stephen. He despises us women."

"No, I don't," said the victim, swaying to and fro on the window-sill,
whither he had retreated.

"Yes, he does. He won't even trouble to answer us. Stephen! Podge!
Answer me. What has happened to the child's soul?"

He flung open the window and leant from them into the dusk. They heard
him mutter something about a bridge.

"What did I tell you? He won't answer my question."

The delightful moment was approaching when the boy would lose his
temper: she knew it by a certain tremor in his heels.

"There wants a bridge," he exploded. "A bridge instead of all this
rotten talk and the level-crossing. It wouldn't break you to build a
two-arch bridge. Then the child's soul, as you call it--well, nothing
would have happened to the child at all."

A gust of night air entered, accompanied by rain. The flowers in the
vases rustled, and the flame of the lamp shot up and smoked the glass.
Slightly irritated, she ordered him to close the window.



XI

Cadover was not a large house. But it is the largest house with which
this story has dealings, and must always be thought of with respect. It
was built about the year 1800, and favoured the architecture of ancient
Rome--chiefly by means of five lank pilasters, which stretched from the
top of it to the bottom. Between the pilasters was the glass front door,
to the right of them the drawing room windows, to the left of them the
windows of the dining-room, above them a triangular area, which the
better-class servants knew as a "pendiment," and which had in its middle
a small round hole, according to the usage of Palladio. The classical
note was also sustained by eight grey steps which led from the building
down into the drive, and by an attempt at a formal garden on the
adjoining lawn. The lawn ended in a Ha-ha ("Ha! ha! who shall regard
it?"), and thence the bare land sloped down into the village. The main
garden (walled) was to the left as one faced the house, while to the
right was that laurel avenue, leading up to Mrs. Failing's arbour.

It was a comfortable but not very attractive place, and, to a certain
type of mind, its situation was not attractive either. From the
distance it showed as a grey box, huddled against evergreens. There
was no mystery about it. You saw it for miles. Its hill had none of the
beetling romance of Devonshire, none of the subtle contours that prelude
a cottage in Kent, but profferred its burden crudely, on a huge bare
palm. "There's Cadover," visitors would say. "How small it still looks.
We shall be late for lunch." And the view from the windows, though
extensive, would not have been accepted by the Royal Academy. A valley,
containing a stream, a road, a railway; over the valley fields of barley
and wurzel, divided by no pretty hedges, and passing into a great and
formless down--this was the outlook, desolate at all times, and almost
terrifying beneath a cloudy sky. The down was called "Cadbury Range"
("Cocoa Squares" if you were young and funny), because high upon
it--one cannot say "on the top," there being scarcely any tops
in Wiltshire--because high upon it there stood a double circle of
entrenchments. A bank of grass enclosed a ring of turnips, which
enclosed a second bank of grass, which enclosed more turnips, and in
the middle of the pattern grew one small tree. British? Roman? Saxon?
Danish? The competent reader will decide. The Thompson family knew it
to be far older than the Franco-German war. It was the property of
Government. It was full of gold and dead soldiers who had fought with
the soldiers on Castle Rings and been beaten. The road to Londinium,
having forded the stream and crossed the valley road and the railway,
passed up by these entrenchments. The road to London lay half a mile to
the right of them.

To complete this survey one must mention the church and the farm, both
of which lay over the stream in Cadford. Between them they ruled the
village, one claiming the souls of the labourers, the other their
bodies. If a man desired other religion or other employment he must
leave. The church lay up by the railway, the farm was down by the water
meadows. The vicar, a gentle charitable man scarcely realized his power,
and never tried to abuse it. Mr. Wilbraham, the agent, was of another
mould. He knew his place, and kept others to theirs: all society seemed
spread before him like a map. The line between the county and the local,
the line between the labourer and the artisan--he knew them all, and
strengthened them with no uncertain touch. Everything with him was
graduated--carefully graduated civility towards his superior, towards
his inferiors carefully graduated incivility. So--for he was a
thoughtful person--so alone, declared he, could things be kept together.

Perhaps the Comic Muse, to whom so much is now attributed, had caused
his estate to be left to Mr. Failing. Mr. Failing was the author of some
brilliant books on socialism,--that was why his wife married him--and
for twenty-five years he reigned up at Cadover and tried to put his
theories into practice. He believed that things could be kept together
by accenting the similarities, not the differences of men. "We are all
much more alike than we confess," was one of his favourite speeches. As
a speech it sounded very well, and his wife had applauded; but when it
resulted in hard work, evenings in the reading-rooms, mixed-parties, and
long unobtrusive talks with dull people, she got bored. In her piquant
way she declared that she was not going to love her husband, and
succeeded. He took it quietly, but his brilliancy decreased. His health
grew worse, and he knew that when he died there was no one to carry on
his work. He felt, besides, that he had done very little. Toil as he
would, he had not a practical mind, and could never dispense with Mr.
Wilbraham. For all his tact, he would often stretch out the hand of
brotherhood too soon, or withhold it when it would have been accepted.
Most people misunderstood him, or only understood him when he was dead.
In after years his reign became a golden age; but he counted a few
disciples in his life-time, a few young labourers and tenant farmers,
who swore tempestuously that he was not really a fool. This, he told
himself, was as much as he deserved.

Cadover was inherited by his widow. She tried to sell it; she tried to
let it; but she asked too much, and as it was neither a pretty place nor
fertile, it was left on her hands. With many a groan she settled down
to banishment. Wiltshire people, she declared, were the stupidest in
England. She told them so to their faces, which made them no brighter.
And their county was worthy of them: no distinction in it--no
style--simply land.

But her wrath passed, or remained only as a graceful fretfulness. She
made the house comfortable, and abandoned the farm to Mr. Wilbraham.
With a good deal of care she selected a small circle of acquaintances,
and had them to stop in the summer months. In the winter she would go to
town and frequent the salons of the literary. As her lameness increased
she moved about less, and at the time of her nephew's visit seldom left
the place that had been forced upon her as a home. Just now she
was busy. A prominent politician had quoted her husband. The young
generation asked, "Who is this Mr. Failing?" and the publishers wrote,
"Now is the time." She was collecting some essays and penning an
introductory memoir.

Rickie admired his aunt, but did not care for her. She reminded him too
much of his father. She had the same affliction, the same heartlessness,
the same habit of taking life with a laugh--as if life is a pill! He
also felt that she had neglected him. He would not have asked much: as
for "prospects," they never entered his head, but she was his only near
relative, and a little kindness and hospitality during the lonely years
would have made incalculable difference. Now that he was happier and
could bring her Agnes, she had asked him to stop at once. The sun as it
rose next morning spoke to him of a new life. He too had a purpose and
a value in the world at last. Leaning out of the window, he gazed at the
earth washed clean and heard through the pure air the distant noises of
the farm.

But that day nothing was to remain divine but the weather. His aunt, for
reasons of her own, decreed that he should go for a ride with the Wonham
boy. They were to look at Old Sarum, proceed thence to Salisbury, lunch
there, see the sights, call on a certain canon for tea, and return to
Cadover in the evening. The arrangement suited no one. He did not want
to ride, but to be with Agnes; nor did Agnes want to be parted from him,
nor Stephen to go with him. But the clearer the wishes of her guests
became, the more determined was Mrs. Failing to disregard them. She
smoothed away every difficulty, she converted every objection into a
reason, and she ordered the horses for half-past nine.

"It is a bore," he grumbled as he sat in their little private
sitting-room, breaking his finger-nails upon the coachman's gaiters. "I
can't ride. I shall fall off. We should have been so happy here. It's
just like Aunt Emily. Can't you imagine her saying afterwards, 'Lovers
are absurd. I made a point of keeping them apart,' and then everybody
laughing."

With a pretty foretaste of the future, Agnes knelt before him and did
the gaiters up. "Who is this Mr. Wonham, by the bye?"

"I don't know. Some connection of Mr. Failing's, I think."

"Does he live here?"

"He used to be at school or something. He seems to have grown into a
tiresome person."

"I suppose that Mrs. Failing has adopted him."

"I suppose so. I believe that she has been quite kind. I do hope she'll
be kind to you this morning. I hate leaving you with her."

"Why, you say she likes me."

"Yes, but that wouldn't prevent--you see she doesn't mind what she says
or what she repeats if it amuses her. If she thought it really funny,
for instance, to break off our engagement, she'd try."

"Dear boy, what a frightful remark! But it would be funnier for us to
see her trying. Whatever could she do?"

He kissed the hands that were still busy with the fastenings. "Nothing.
I can't see one thing. We simply lie open to each other, you and I.
There isn't one new corner in either of us that she could reveal.
It's only that I always have in this house the most awful feeling of
insecurity."

"Why?"

"If any one says or does a foolish thing it's always here. All the
family breezes have started here. It's a kind of focus for aimed and
aimless scandal. You know, when my father and mother had their special
quarrel, my aunt was mixed up in it,--I never knew how or how much--but
you may be sure she didn't calm things down, unless she found things
more entertaining calm."

"Rickie! Rickie!" cried the lady from the garden, "Your riding-master's
impatient."

"We really oughtn't to talk of her like this here," whispered Agnes.
"It's a horrible habit."

"The habit of the country, Agnes. Ugh, this gossip!" Suddenly he flung
his arms over her. "Dear--dear--let's beware of I don't know what--of
nothing at all perhaps."

"Oh, buck up!" yelled the irritable Stephen. "Which am I to
shorten--left stirrup or right?"

"Left!" shouted Agnes.

"How many holes?"

They hurried down. On the way she said: "I'm glad of the warning. Now
I'm prepared. Your aunt will get nothing out of me."

Her betrothed tried to mount with the wrong foot according to his
invariable custom. She also had to pick up his whip. At last they
started, the boy showing off pretty consistently, and she was left alone
with her hostess.

"Dido is quiet as a lamb," said Mrs. Failing, "and Stephen is a good
fielder. What a blessing it is to have cleared out the men. What shall
you and I do this heavenly morning?"

"I'm game for anything."

"Have you quite unpacked?"

"Yes."

"Any letters to write?" No.

"Then let's go to my arbour. No, we won't. It gets the morning sun, and
it'll be too hot today." Already she regretted clearing out the men. On
such a morning she would have liked to drive, but her third animal had
gone lame. She feared, too, that Miss Pembroke was going to bore her.
However, they did go to the arbour. In languid tones she pointed out the
various objects of interest.

"There's the Cad, which goes into the something, which goes into the
Avon. Cadbury Rings opposite, Cadchurch to the extreme left: you can't
see it. You were there last night. It is famous for the drunken parson
and the railway-station. Then Cad Dauntsey. Then Cadford, that side of
the stream, connected with Cadover, this. Observe the fertility of the
Wiltshire mind."

"A terrible lot of Cads," said Agnes brightly.

Mrs. Failing divided her guests into those who made this joke and those
who did not. The latter class was very small.

"The vicar of Cadford--not the nice drunkard--declares the name is
really 'Chadford,' and he worried on till I put up a window to St. Chad
in our church. His Cambridge wife pronounces it 'Hyadford.' I could
smack them both. How do you like Podge? Ah! you jump; I meant you to.
How do you like Podge Wonham?"

"Very nice," said Agnes, laughing.

"Nice! He is a hero."

There was a long interval of silence. Each lady looked, without much
interest, at the view. Mrs. Failing's attitude towards Nature was
severely aesthetic--an attitude more sterile than the severely
practical. She applied the test of beauty to shadow and odour and sound;
they never filled her with reverence or excitement; she never knew them
as a resistless trinity that may intoxicate the worshipper with joy. If
she liked a ploughed field, it was only as a spot of colour--not also as
a hint of the endless strength of the earth. And today she could approve
of one cloud, but object to its fellow. As for Miss Pembroke, she was
not approving or objecting at all. "A hero?" she queried, when the
interval had passed. Her voice was indifferent, as if she had been
thinking of other things.

"A hero? Yes. Didn't you notice how heroic he was?"

"I don't think I did."

"Not at dinner? Ah, Agnes, always look out for heroism at dinner. It is
their great time. They live up to the stiffness of their shirt fronts.
Do you mean to say that you never noticed how he set down Rickie?"

"Oh, that about poetry!" said Agnes, laughing. "Rickie would not mind it
for a moment. But why do you single out that as heroic?"

"To snub people! to set them down! to be rude to them! to make them feel
small! Surely that's the lifework of a hero?"

"I shouldn't have said that. And as a matter of fact Mr. Wonham was
wrong over the poetry. I made Rickie look it up afterwards."

"But of course. A hero always is wrong."

"To me," she persisted, rather gently, "a hero has always been a strong
wonderful being, who champions--"

"Ah, wait till you are the dragon! I have been a dragon most of my life,
I think. A dragon that wants nothing but a peaceful cave. Then in
comes the strong, wonderful, delightful being, and gains a princess
by piercing my hide. No, seriously, my dear Agnes, the chief
characteristics of a hero are infinite disregard for the feelings of
others, plus general inability to understand them."

"But surely Mr. Wonham--"

"Yes; aren't we being unkind to the poor boy. Ought we to go on
talking?"

Agnes waited, remembering the warnings of Rickie, and thinking that
anything she said might perhaps be repeated.

"Though even if he was here he wouldn't understand what we are saying."

"Wouldn't understand?"

Mrs. Failing gave the least flicker of an eye towards her companion.
"Did you take him for clever?"

"I don't think I took him for anything." She smiled. "I have been
thinking of other things, and another boy."

"But do think for a moment of Stephen. I will describe how he spent
yesterday. He rose at eight. From eight to eleven he sang. The song was
called, 'Father's boots will soon fit Willie.' He stopped once to say to
the footman, 'She'll never finish her book. She idles: 'She' being I. At
eleven he went out, and stood in the rain till four, but had the luck
to see a child run over at the level-crossing. By half-past four he had
knocked the bottom out of Christianity."

Agnes looked bewildered.

"Aren't you impressed? I was. I told him that he was on no account to
unsettle the vicar. Open that cupboard, one of those sixpenny books
tells Podge that he's made of hard little black things, another
that he's made of brown things, larger and squashy. There seems a
discrepancy, but anything is better for a thoughtful youth than to be
made in the Garden of Eden. Let us eliminate the poetic, at whatever
cost to the probable." When for a moment she spoke more gravely. "Here
he is at twenty, with nothing to hold on by. I don't know what's to be
done. I suppose it's my fault. But I've never had any bother over the
Church of England; have you?"

"Of course I go with my Church," said Miss Pembroke, who hated this
style of conversation. "I don't know, I'm sure. I think you should
consult a man."

"Would Rickie help me?"

"Rickie would do anything he can." And Mrs. Failing noted the half
official way in which she vouched for her lover. "But of course Rickie
is a little--complicated. I doubt whether Mr. Wonham would understand
him. He wants--doesn't he?--some one who's a little more assertive and
more accustomed to boys. Some one more like my brother."

"Agnes!" she seized her by the arm. "Do you suppose that Mr. Pembroke
would undertake my Podge?"

She shook her head. "His time is so filled up. He gets a boarding-house
next term. Besides--after all I don't know what Herbert would do."

"Morality. He would teach him morality. The Thirty-Nine Articles
may come of themselves, but if you have no morals you come to grief.
Morality is all I demand from Mr. Herbert Pembroke. He shall be excused
the use of the globes. You know, of course, that Stephen's expelled from
a public school? He stole."

The school was not a public one, and the expulsion, or rather request
for removal, had taken place when Stephen was fourteen. A violent
spasm of dishonesty--such as often heralds the approach of manhood--had
overcome him. He stole everything, especially what was difficult to
steal, and hid the plunder beneath a loose plank in the passage. He was
betrayed by the inclusion of a ham. This was the crisis of his career.
His benefactress was just then rather bored with him. He had stopped
being a pretty boy, and she rather doubted whether she would see him
through. But she was so raged with the letters of the schoolmaster, and
so delighted with those of the criminal, that she had him back and gave
him a prize.

"No," said Agnes, "I didn't know. I should be happy to speak to Herbert,
but, as I said, his time will be very full. But I know he has friends
who make a speciality of weakly or--or unusual boys."

"My dear, I've tried it. Stephen kicked the weakly boys and robbed
apples with the unusual ones. He was expelled again."

Agnes began to find Mrs. Failing rather tiresome. Wherever you trod on
her, she seemed to slip away from beneath your feet. Agnes liked to know
where she was and where other people were as well. She said: "My brother
thinks a great deal of home life. I daresay he'd think that Mr. Wonham
is best where he is--with you. You have been so kind to him. You"--she
paused--"have been to him both father and mother."

"I'm too hot," was Mrs. Failing's reply. It seemed that Miss Pembroke
had at last touched a topic on which she was reticent. She rang the
electric bell,--it was only to tell the footman to take the reprints to
Mr. Wonham's room,--and then murmuring something about work, proceeded
herself to the house.

"Mrs. Failing--" said Agnes, who had not expected such a speedy end to
their chat.

"Call me Aunt Emily. My dear?"

"Aunt Emily, what did you think of that story Rickie sent you?"

"It is bad," said Mrs. Failing. "But. But. But." Then she escaped,
having told the truth, and yet leaving a pleasurable impression behind
her.



XII

The excursion to Salisbury was but a poor business--in fact, Rickie
never got there. They were not out of the drive before Mr. Wonham began
doing acrobatics. He showed Rickie how very quickly he could turn round
in his saddle and sit with his face to Aeneas's tail. "I see," said
Rickie coldly, and became almost cross when they arrived in this
condition at the gate behind the house, for he had to open it, and was
afraid of falling. As usual, he anchored just beyond the fastenings, and
then had to turn Dido, who seemed as long as a battleship. To his relief
a man came forward, and murmuring, "Worst gate in the parish," pushed it
wide and held it respectfully. "Thank you," cried Rickie; "many
thanks." But Stephen, who was riding into the world back first, said
majestically, "No, no; it doesn't count. You needn't think it does. You
make it worse by touching your hat. Four hours and seven minutes! You'll
see me again." The man answered nothing.

"Eh, but I'll hurt him," he chanted, as he swung into position. "That
was Flea. Eh, but he's forgotten my fists; eh, but I'll hurt him."

"Why?" ventured Rickie. Last night, over cigarettes, he had been bored
to death by the story of Flea. The boy had a little reminded him of
Gerald--the Gerald of history, not the Gerald of romance. He was more
genial, but there was the same brutality, the same peevish insistence on
the pound of flesh.

"Hurt him till he learns."

"Learns what?"

"Learns, of course," retorted Stephen. Neither of them was very civil.
They did not dislike each other, but they each wanted to be somewhere
else--exactly the situation that Mrs. Failing had expected.

"He behaved badly," said Rickie, "because he is poorer than we are, and
more ignorant. Less money has been spent on teaching him to behave."

"Well, I'll teach him for nothing."

"Perhaps his fists are stronger than yours!"

"They aren't. I looked."

After this conversation flagged. Rickie glanced back at Cadover,
and thought of the insipid day that lay before him. Generally he was
attracted by fresh people, and Stephen was almost fresh: they had been
to him symbols of the unknown, and all that they did was interesting.
But now he cared for the unknown no longer. He knew.

Mr. Wilbraham passed them in his dog-cart, and lifted his hat to his
employer's nephew. Stephen he ignored: he could not find him on the map.

"Good morning," said Rickie. "What a lovely morning!"

"I say," called the other, "another child dead!" Mr. Wilbraham, who had
seemed inclined to chat, whipped up his horse and left them.

"There goes an out and outer," said Stephen; and then, as if introducing
an entirely new subject--"Don't you think Flea Thompson treated me
disgracefully?"

"I suppose he did. But I'm scarcely the person to sympathize." The
allusion fell flat, and he had to explain it. "I should have done the
same myself,--promised to be away two hours, and stopped four."

"Stopped-oh--oh, I understand. You being in love, you mean?"

He smiled and nodded.

"Oh, I've no objection to Flea loving. He says he can't help it. But as
long as my fists are stronger, he's got to keep it in line."

"In line?"

"A man like that, when he's got a girl, thinks the rest can go to the
devil. He goes cutting his work and breaking his word. Wilbraham ought
to sack him. I promise you when I've a girl I'll keep her in line, and
if she turns nasty, I'll get another."

Rickie smiled and said no more. But he was sorry that any one should
start life with such a creed--all the more sorry because the creed
caricatured his own. He too believed that life should be in a line--a
line of enormous length, full of countless interests and countless
figures, all well beloved. But woman was not to be "kept" to this line.
Rather did she advance it continually, like some triumphant general,
making each unit still more interesting, still more lovable, than it had
been before. He loved Agnes, not only for herself, but because she was
lighting up the human world. But he could scarcely explain this to an
inexperienced animal, nor did he make the attempt.

For a long time they proceeded in silence. The hill behind Cadover
was in harvest, and the horses moved regretfully between the sheaves.
Stephen had picked a grass leaf, and was blowing catcalls upon it. He
blew very well, and this morning all his soul went into the wail. For he
was ill. He was tortured with the feeling that he could not get away
and do--do something, instead of being civil to this anaemic prig. Four
hours in the rain was better than this: he had not wanted to fidget in
the rain. But now the air was like wine, and the stubble was smelling of
wet, and over his head white clouds trundled more slowly and more seldom
through broadening tracts of blue. There never had been such a morning,
and he shut up his eyes and called to it. And whenever he called, Rickie
shut up his eyes and winced.

At last the blade broke. "We don't go quick, do we" he remarked, and
looked on the weedy track for another.

"I wish you wouldn't let me keep you. If you were alone you would be
galloping or something of that sort."

"I was told I must go your pace," he said mournfully. "And you promised
Miss Pembroke not to hurry."

"Well, I'll disobey." But he could not rise above a gentle trot, and
even that nearly jerked him out of the saddle.

"Sit like this," said Stephen. "Can't you see like this?" Rickie lurched
forward, and broke his thumb nail on the horse's neck. It bled a little,
and had to be bound up.

"Thank you--awfully kind--no tighter, please--I'm simply spoiling your
day."

"I can't think how a man can help riding. You've only to leave it to the
horse so!--so!--just as you leave it to water in swimming."

Rickie left it to Dido, who stopped immediately.

"I said LEAVE it." His voice rose irritably. "I didn't say 'die.' Of
course she stops if you die. First you sit her as if you're Sandow
exercising, and then you sit like a corpse. Can't you tell her you're
alive? That's all she wants."

In trying to convey the information, Rickie dropped his whip. Stephen
picked it up and rammed it into the belt of his own Norfolk jacket. He
was scarcely a fashionable horseman. He was not even graceful. But he
rode as a living man, though Rickie was too much bored to notice it. Not
a muscle in him was idle, not a muscle working hard. When he returned
from the gallop his limbs were still unsatisfied and his manners still
irritable. He did not know that he was ill: he knew nothing about
himself at all.

"Like a howdah in the Zoo," he grumbled. "Mother Failing will buy
elephants." And he proceeded to criticize his benefactress. Rickie,
keenly alive to bad taste, tried to stop him, and gained instead a
criticism of religion. Stephen overthrew the Mosaic cosmogony. He
pointed out the discrepancies in the Gospels. He levelled his wit
against the most beautiful spire in the world, now rising against the
southern sky. Between whiles he went for a gallop. After a time Rickie
stopped listening, and simply went his way. For Dido was a perfect
mount, and as indifferent to the motions of Aeneas as if she was
strolling in the Elysian fields. He had had a bad night, and the strong
air made him sleepy. The wind blew from the Plain. Cadover and its
valley had disappeared, and though they had not climbed much and could
not see far, there was a sense of infinite space. The fields were
enormous, like fields on the Continent, and the brilliant sun showed up
their colours well. The green of the turnips, the gold of the harvest,
and the brown of the newly turned clods, were each contrasted with
morsels of grey down. But the general effect was pale, or rather
silvery, for Wiltshire is not a county of heavy tints. Beneath these
colours lurked the unconquerable chalk, and wherever the soil was poor
it emerged. The grassy track, so gay with scabious and bedstraw, was
snow-white at the bottom of its ruts. A dazzling amphitheatre gleamed
in the flank of a distant hill, cut for some Olympian audience. And
here and there, whatever the surface crop, the earth broke into little
embankments, little ditches, little mounds: there had been no lack of
drama to solace the gods.

In Cadover, the perilous house, Agnes had already parted from Mrs.
Failing. His thoughts returned to her. Was she, the soul of truth, in
safety? Was her purity vexed by the lies and selfishness? Would she
elude the caprice which had, he vaguely knew, caused suffering before?
Ah, the frailty of joy! Ah, the myriads of longings that pass without
fruition, and the turf grows over them! Better men, women as noble--they
had died up here and their dust had been mingled, but only their dust.
These are morbid thoughts, but who dare contradict them? There is much
good luck in the world, but it is luck. We are none of us safe. We
are children, playing or quarreling on the line, and some of us have
Rickie's temperament, or his experiences, and admit it.

So he mused, that anxious little speck, and all the land seemed to
comment on his fears and on his love.

Their path lay upward, over a great bald skull, half grass, half
stubble. It seemed each moment there would be a splendid view. The view
never came, for none of the inclines were sharp enough, and they
moved over the skull for many minutes, scarcely shifting a landmark or
altering the blue fringe of the distance. The spire of Salisbury did
alter, but very slightly, rising and falling like the mercury in a
thermometer. At the most it would be half hidden; at the least the
tip would show behind the swelling barrier of earth. They passed two
elder-trees--a great event. The bare patch, said Stephen, was owing to
the gallows. Rickie nodded. He had lost all sense of incident. In this
great solitude--more solitary than any Alpine range--he and Agnes
were floating alone and for ever, between the shapeless earth and the
shapeless clouds. An immense silence seemed to move towards them. A lark
stopped singing, and they were glad of it. They were approaching the
Throne of God. The silence touched them; the earth and all danger
dissolved, but ere they quite vanished Rickie heard himself saying, "Is
it exactly what we intended?"

"Yes," said a man's voice; "it's the old plan." They were in another
valley. Its sides were thick with trees. Down it ran another stream
and another road: it, too, sheltered a string of villages. But all
was richer, larger, and more beautiful--the valley of the Avon below
Amesbury.

"I've been asleep!" said Rickie, in awestruck tones.

"Never!" said the other facetiously. "Pleasant dreams?"

"Perhaps--I'm really tired of apologizing to you. How long have you been
holding me on?"

"All in the day's work." He gave him back the reins.

"Where's that round hill?"

"Gone where the good niggers go. I want a drink."

This is Nature's joke in Wiltshire--her one joke. You toil on windy
slopes, and feel very primeval. You are miles from your fellows, and lo!
a little valley full of elms and cottages. Before Rickie had waked up to
it, they had stopped by a thatched public-house, and Stephen was yelling
like a maniac for beer.

There was no occasion to yell. He was not very thirsty, and they were
quite ready to serve him. Nor need he have drunk in the saddle, with the
air of a warrior who carries important dispatches and has not the time
to dismount. A real soldier, bound on a similar errand, rode up to the
inn, and Stephen feared that he would yell louder, and was hostile. But
they made friends and treated each other, and slanged the proprietor and
ragged the pretty girls; while Rickie, as each wave of vulgarity burst
over him, sunk his head lower and lower, and wished that the earth
would swallow him up. He was only used to Cambridge, and to a very small
corner of that. He and his friends there believed in free speech.
But they spoke freely about generalities. They were scientific and
philosophic. They would have shrunk from the empirical freedom that
results from a little beer.

That was what annoyed him as he rode down the new valley with two
chattering companions. He was more skilled than they were in the
principles of human existence, but he was not so indecently familiar
with the examples. A sordid village scandal--such as Stephen described
as a huge joke--sprang from certain defects in human nature, with which
he was theoretically acquainted. But the example! He blushed at it like
a maiden lady, in spite of its having a parallel in a beautiful idyll of
Theocritus. Was experience going to be such a splendid thing after all?
Were the outside of houses so very beautiful?

"That's spicy!" the soldier was saying. "Got any more like that?"

"I'se got a pome," said Stephen, and drew a piece of paper from his
pocket. The valley had broadened. Old Sarum rose before them, ugly and
majestic.

"Write this yourself?" he asked, chuckling.

"Rather," said Stephen, lowering his head and kissing Aeneas between the
ears.

"But who's old Em'ly?" Rickie winced and frowned.

"Now you're asking.

"Old Em'ly she limps, And as--"

"I am so tired," said Rickie. Why should he stand it any longer?

He would go home to the woman he loved. "Do you mind if I give up
Salisbury?"

"But we've seen nothing!" cried Stephen.

"I shouldn't enjoy anything, I am so absurdly tired."

"Left turn, then--all in the day's work." He bit at his moustache
angrily.

"Good gracious me, man!--of course I'm going back alone. I'm not going
to spoil your day. How could you think it of me?"

Stephen gave a loud sigh of relief. "If you do want to go home, here's
your whip. Don't fall off. Say to her you wanted it, or there might be
ructions."

"Certainly. Thank you for your kind care of me."

"'Old Em'ly she limps, And as--'"

Soon he was out of earshot. Soon they were lost to view. Soon they were
out of his thoughts. He forgot the coarseness and the drinking and the
ingratitude. A few months ago he would not have forgotten so quickly,
and he might also have detected something else. But a lover is dogmatic.
To him the world shall be beautiful and pure. When it is not, he ignores
it.

"He's not tired," said Stephen to the soldier; "he wants his girl." And
they winked at each other, and cracked jokes over the eternal comedy of
love. They asked each other if they'd let a girl spoil a morning's ride.
They both exhibited a profound cynicism. Stephen, who was quite without
ballast, described the household at Cadover: he should say that Rickie
would find Miss Pembroke kissing the footman.

"I say the footman's kissing old Em'ly."

"Jolly day," said Stephen. His voice was suddenly constrained. He was
not sure whether he liked the soldier after all, nor whether he had been
wise in showing him his compositions.

"'Old Em'ly she limps, And as--'"

"All right, Thomas. That'll do."

"Old Em'ly--'"

"I wish you'd dry up, like a good fellow. This is the lady's horse, you
know, hang it, after all."

"In-deed!"

"Don't you see--when a fellow's on a horse, he can't let another
fellow--kind of--don't you know?"

The man did know. "There's sense in that." he said approvingly. Peace
was restored, and they would have reached Salisbury if they had not had
some more beer. It unloosed the soldier's fancies, and again he spoke of
old Em'ly, and recited the poem, with Aristophanic variations.

"Jolly day," repeated Stephen, with a straightening of the eyebrows
and a quick glance at the other's body. He then warned him against
the variations. In consequence he was accused of being a member of the
Y.M.C.A. His blood boiled at this. He refuted the charge, and became
great friends with the soldier, for the third time.

"Any objection to 'Saucy Mr. and Mrs. Tackleton'?"

"Rather not."

The soldier sang "Saucy Mr. and Mrs. Tackleton." It is really a work
for two voices, most of the sauciness disappearing when taken as a solo.
Nor is Mrs. Tackleton's name Em'lv.

"I call it a jolly rotten song," said Stephen crossly. "I won't stand
being got at."

"P'r'aps y'like therold song. Lishen.

     "'Of all the gulls that arsshmart,
     There's none line pretty--Em'ly;
     For she's the darling of merart'"

"Now, that's wrong." He rode up close to the singer.

"Shright."

"'Tisn't."

"It's as my mother taught me."

"I don't care."

"I'll not alter from mother's way."

Stephen was baffled. Then he said, "How does your mother make it rhyme?"

"Wot?"

"Squat. You're an ass, and I'm not. Poems want rhymes. 'Alley' comes
next line."

He said "alley" was--welcome to come if it liked.

"It can't. You want Sally. Sally--alley. Em'ly-alley doesn't do."

"Emily-femily!" cried the soldier, with an inspiration that was not his
when sober. "My mother taught me femily.

"'For she's the darling of merart, And she lives in my femily.'"

"Well, you'd best be careful, Thomas, and your mother too."

"Your mother's no better than she should be," said Thomas vaguely.

"Do you think I haven't heard that before?" retorted the boy. The other
concluded he might now say anything. So he might--the name of old Emily
excepted. Stephen cared little about his benefactress's honour, but a
great deal about his own. He had made Mrs. Failing into a test. For the
moment he would die for her, as a knight would die for a glove. He is
not to be distinguished from a hero.

Old Sarum was passed. They approached the most beautiful spire in
the world. "Lord! another of these large churches!" said the soldier.
Unfriendly to Gothic, he lifted both hands to his nose, and declared
that old Em'ly was buried there. He lay in the mud. His horse trotted
back towards Amesbury, Stephen had twisted him out of the saddle.

"I've done him!" he yelled, though no one was there to hear. He rose up
in his stirrups and shouted with joy. He flung his arms round Aeneas's
neck. The elderly horse understood, capered, and bolted. It was a
centaur that dashed into Salisbury and scattered the people. In
the stable he would not dismount. "I've done him!" he yelled to the
ostlers--apathetic men. Stretching upwards, he clung to a beam. Aeneas
moved on and he was left hanging. Greatly did he incommode them by his
exercises. He pulled up, he circled, he kicked the other customers. At
last he fell to the earth, deliciously fatigued. His body worried him no
longer.

He went, like the baby he was, to buy a white linen hat. There were
soldiers about, and he thought it would disguise him. Then he had a
little lunch to steady the beer. This day had turned out admirably. All
the money that should have fed Rickie he could spend on himself. Instead
of toiling over the Cathedral and seeing the stuffed penguins, he could
stop the whole thing in the cattle market. There he met and made some
friends. He watched the cheap-jacks, and saw how necessary it was to
have a confident manner. He spoke confidently himself about lambs, and
people listened. He spoke confidently about pigs, and they roared with
laughter. He must learn more about pigs. He witnessed a performance--not
too namby-pamby--of Punch and Judy. "Hullo, Podge!" cried a naughty
little girl. He tried to catch her, and failed. She was one of the
Cadford children. For Salisbury on market day, though it is not
picturesque, is certainly representative, and you read the names of
half the Wiltshire villages upon the carriers' carts. He found, in Penny
Farthing Street, the cart from Wintersbridge. It would not start for
several hours, but the passengers always used it as a club, and sat in
it every now and then during the day. No less than three ladies were
these now, staring at the shafts. One of them was Flea Thompson's girl.
He asked her, quite politely, why her lover had broken faith with him
in the rain. She was silent. He warned her of approaching vengeance. She
was still silent, but another woman hoped that a gentleman would not
be hard on a poor person. Something in this annoyed him; it wasn't a
question of gentility and poverty--it was a question of two men. He
determined to go back by Cadbury Rings where the shepherd would now be.

He did. But this part must be treated lightly. He rode up to the culprit
with the air of a Saint George, spoke a few stern words from the saddle,
tethered his steed to a hurdle, and took off his coat. "Are you ready?"
he asked.

"Yes, sir," said Flea, and flung him on his back.

"That's not fair," he protested.

The other did not reply, but flung him on his head.

"How on earth did you learn that?"

"By trying often," said Flea.

Stephen sat on the ground, picking mud out of his forehead. "I meant it
to be fists," he said gloomily.

"I know, sir."

"It's jolly smart though, and--and I beg your pardon all round." It
cost him a great deal to say this, but he was sure that it was the right
thing to say. He must acknowledge the better man. Whereas most people,
if they provoke a fight and are flung, say, "You cannot rob me of my
moral victory."

There was nothing further to be done. He mounted again, not exactly
depressed, but feeling that this delightful world is extraordinarily
unreliable. He had never expected to fling the soldier, or to be
flung by Flea. "One nips or is nipped," he thought, "and never knows
beforehand. I should not be surprised if many people had more in them
than I suppose, while others were just the other way round. I haven't
seen that sort of thing in Ingersoll, but it's quite important." Then
his thoughts turned to a curious incident of long ago, when he had been
"nipped"--as a little boy. He was trespassing in those woods, when
he met in a narrow glade a flock of sheep. They had neither dog nor
shepherd, and advanced towards him silently. He was accustomed to sheep,
but had never happened to meet them in a wood before, and disliked it.
He retired, slowly at first, then fast; and the flock, in a dense mass,
pressed after him. His terror increased. He turned and screamed at their
long white faces; and still they came on, all stuck together, like some
horrible jell--. If once he got into them! Bellowing and screeching, he
rushed into the undergrowth, tore himself all over, and reached home in
convulsions. Mr. Failing, his only grown-up friend, was sympathetic, but
quite stupid. "Pan ovium custos," he sympathetic, as he pulled out the
thorns. "Why not?" "Pan ovium custos." Stephen learnt the meaning of the
phrase at school, "A pan of eggs for custard." He still remembered how
the other boys looked as he peeped at them between his legs, awaiting
the descending cane.

So he returned, full of pleasant disconnected thoughts. He had had a
rare good time. He liked every one--even that poor little Elliot--and
yet no one mattered. They were all out. On the landing he saw the
housemaid. He felt skittish and irresistible. Should he slip his arm
round her waist? Perhaps better not; she might box his ears. And he
wanted to smoke on the roof before dinner. So he only said, "Please will
you stop the boy blacking my brown boots," and she with downcast eyes,
answered, "Yes, sir; I will indeed."

His room was in the pediment. Classical architecture, like all things in
this world that attempt serenity, is bound to have its lapses into the
undignified, and Cadover lapsed hopelessly when it came to Stephen's
room. It gave him one round window, to see through which he must lie
upon his stomach, one trapdoor opening upon the leads, three iron
girders, three beams, six buttresses, no circling, unless you count the
walls, no walls unless you count the ceiling and in its embarrassment
presented him with the gurgly cistern that supplied the bath water. Here
he lived, absolutely happy, and unaware that Mrs. Failing had poked him
up here on purpose, to prevent him from growing too bumptious. Here he
worked and sang and practised on the ocharoon. Here, in the crannies, he
had constructed shelves and cupboards and useless little drawers. He had
only one picture--the Demeter of Onidos--and she hung straight from the
roof like a joint of meat. Once she was in the drawing-room; but
Mrs. Failing had got tired of her, and decreed her removal and this
degradation. Now she faced the sunrise; and when the moon rose its light
also fell on her, and trembled, like light upon the sea. For she was
never still, and if the draught increased she would twist on her string,
and would sway and tap upon the rafters until Stephen woke up and said
what he thought of her. "Want your nose?" he would murmur. "Don't you
wish you may get it" Then he drew the clothes over his ears, while above
him, in the wind and the darkness, the goddess continued her motions.

Today, as he entered, he trod on the pile of sixpenny reprints. Leighton
had brought them up. He looked at the portraits in their covers, and
began to think that these people were not everything. What a fate,
to look like Colonel Ingersoll, or to marry Mrs. Julia P. Chunk! The
Demeter turned towards him as he bathed, and in the cold water he sang--

     "They aren't beautiful, they aren't modest;
     I'd just as soon follow an old stone goddess,"

and sprang upward through the skylight on to the roof. Years ago, when
a nurse was washing him, he had slipped from her soapy hands and got up
here. She implored him to remember that he was a little gentleman; but
he forgot the fact--if it was a fact--and not even the butler could get
him down. Mr. Failing, who was sitting alone in the garden too ill to
read, heard a shout, "Am I an acroterium?" He looked up and saw a naked
child poised on the summit of Cadover. "Yes," he replied; "but they are
unfashionable. Go in," and the vision had remained with him as something
peculiarly gracious. He felt that nonsense and beauty have close
connections,--closer connections than Art will allow,--and that both
would remain when his own heaviness and his own ugliness had perished.
Mrs. Failing found in his remains a sentence that puzzled her. "I see
the respectable mansion. I see the smug fortress of culture. The doors
are shut. The windows are shut. But on the roof the children go dancing
for ever."

Stephen was a child no longer. He never stood on the pediment now,
except for a bet. He never, or scarcely ever, poured water down the
chimneys. When he caught the cat, he seldom dropped her into the
housekeeper's bedroom. But still, when the weather was fair, he liked to
come up after bathing, and get dry in the sun. Today he brought with him
a towel, a pipe of tobacco, and Rickie's story. He must get it done some
time, and he was tired of the six-penny reprints. The sloping gable
was warm, and he lay back on it with closed eyes, gasping for pleasure.
Starlings criticized him, snots fell on his clean body, and over him a
little cloud was tinged with the colours of evening. "Good! good!" he
whispered. "Good, oh good!" and opened the manuscript reluctantly.

What a production! Who was this girl? Where did she go to? Why so much
talk about trees? "I take it he wrote it when feeling bad," he murmured,
and let it fall into the gutter. It fell face downwards, and on the back
he saw a neat little resume in Miss Pembroke's handwriting, intended for
such as him. "Allegory. Man = modern civilization (in bad sense). Girl =
getting into touch with Nature."

In touch with Nature! The girl was a tree! He lit his pipe and gazed at
the radiant earth. The foreground was hidden, but there was the village
with its elms, and the Roman Road, and Cadbury Rings. There, too, were
those woods, and little beech copses, crowning a waste of down. Not to
mention the air, or the sun, or water. Good, oh good!

In touch with Nature! What cant would the books think of next? His eyes
closed. He was sleepy. Good, oh good! Sighing into his pipe, he fell
asleep.



XIII

Glad as Agnes was when her lover returned for lunch, she was at the
same time rather dismayed: she knew that Mrs. Failing would not like her
plans altered. And her dismay was justified. Their hostess was a little
stiff, and asked whether Stephen had been obnoxious.

"Indeed he hasn't. He spent the whole time looking after me."

"From which I conclude he was more obnoxious than usual." Rickie praised
him diligently. But his candid nature showed everything through. His
aunt soon saw that they had not got on. She had expected this--almost
planned it. Nevertheless she resented it, and her resentment was to fall
on him.

The storm gathered slowly, and many other things went to swell it.
Weakly people, if they are not careful, hate one another, and when the
weakness is hereditary the temptation increases. Elliots had never got
on among themselves. They talked of "The Family," but they always turned
outwards to the health and beauty that lie so promiscuously about the
world. Rickie's father had turned, for a time at all events, to his
mother. Rickie himself was turning to Agnes. And Mrs. Failing now was
irritable, and unfair to the nephew who was lame like her horrible
brother and like herself. She thought him invertebrate and conventional.
She was envious of his happiness. She did not trouble to understand his
art. She longed to shatter him, but knowing as she did that the human
thunderbolt often rebounds and strikes the wielder, she held her hand.

Agnes watched the approaching clouds. Rickie had warned her; now she
began to warn him. As the visit wore away she urged him to be pleasant
to his aunt, and so convert it into a success.

He replied, "Why need it be a success?"--a reply in the manner of
Ansell.

She laughed. "Oh, that's so like you men--all theory! What about your
great theory of hating no one? As soon as it comes in useful you drop
it."

"I don't hate Aunt Emily. Honestly. But certainly I don't want to be
near her or think about her. Don't you think there are two great things
in life that we ought to aim at--truth and kindness? Let's have both if
we can, but let's be sure of having one or the other. My aunt gives up
both for the sake of being funny."

"And Stephen Wonham," pursued Agnes. "There's another person you
hate--or don't think about, if you prefer it put like that."

"The truth is, I'm changing. I'm beginning to see that the world has
many people in it who don't matter. I had time for them once. Not now."
There was only one gate to the kingdom of heaven now.

Agnes surprised him by saying, "But the Wonham boy is evidently a part
of your aunt's life. She laughs at him, but she is fond of him."

"What's that to do with it?"

"You ought to be pleasant to him on account of it."

"Why on earth?"

She flushed a little. "I'm old-fashioned. One ought to consider one's
hostess, and fall in with her life. After we leave it's another thing.
But while we take her hospitality I think it's our duty."

Her good sense triumphed. Henceforth he tried to fall in with Aunt
Emily's life. Aunt Emily watched him trying. The storm broke, as storms
sometimes do, on Sunday.

Sunday church was a function at Cadover, though a strange one. The
pompous landau rolled up to the house at a quarter to eleven. Then Mrs.
Failing said, "Why am I being hurried?" and after an interval descended
the steps in her ordinary clothes. She regarded the church as a sort of
sitting-room, and refused even to wear a bonnet there. The village was
shocked, but at the same time a little proud; it would point out the
carriage to strangers and gossip about the pale smiling lady who sat in
it, always alone, always late, her hair always draped in an expensive
shawl.

This Sunday, though late as usual, she was not alone. Miss Pembroke,
en grande toilette, sat by her side. Rickie, looking plain and devout,
perched opposite. And Stephen actually came too, murmuring that it would
be the Benedicite, which he had never minded. There was also the Litany,
which drove him into the air again, much to Mrs. Failing's delight. She
enjoyed this sort of thing. It amused her when her Protege left the pew,
looking bored, athletic, and dishevelled, and groping most obviously for
his pipe. She liked to keep a thoroughbred pagan to shock people. "He's
gone to worship Nature," she whispered. Rickie did not look up. "Don't
you think he's charming?" He made no reply.

"Charming," whispered Agnes over his head.

During the sermon she analysed her guests. Miss
Pembroke--undistinguished, unimaginative, tolerable.
Rickie--intolerable. "And how pedantic!" she mused. "He smells of the
University library. If he was stupid in the right way he would be a
don." She looked round the tiny church; at the whitewashed pillars,
the humble pavement, the window full of magenta saints. There was
the vicar's wife. And Mrs. Wilbraham's bonnet. Ugh! The rest of the
congregation were poor women, with flat, hopeless faces--she saw them
Sunday after Sunday, but did not know their names--diversified with a
few reluctant plough-boys, and the vile little school children row upon
row. "Ugh! what a hole," thought Mrs. Failing, whose Christianity was
the type best described as "cathedral." "What a hole for a cultured
woman! I don't think it has blunted my sensations, though; I still
see its squalor as clearly as ever. And my nephew pretends he is
worshipping. Pah! the hypocrite." Above her the vicar spoke of the
danger of hurrying from one dissipation to another. She treasured his
words, and continued: "I cannot stand smugness. It is the one, the
unpardonable sin. Fresh air! The fresh air that has made Stephen Wonham
fresh and companionable and strong. Even if it kills, I will let in the
fresh air."

Thus reasoned Mrs. Failing, in the facile vein of Ibsenism. She imagined
herself to be a cold-eyed Scandinavian heroine. Really she was an
English old lady, who did not mind giving other people a chill provided
it was not infectious.

Agnes, on the way back, noted that her hostess was a little snappish.
But one is so hungry after morning service, and either so hot or so
cold, that he would be a saint indeed who becomes a saint at once. Mrs.
Failing, after asserting vindictively that it was impossible to make
a living out of literature, was courteously left alone. Roast-beef
and moselle might yet work miracles, and Agnes still hoped for the
introductions--the introductions to certain editors and publishers--on
which her whole diplomacy was bent. Rickie would not push himself. It
was his besetting sin. Well for him that he would have a wife, and a
loving wife, who knew the value of enterprise.

Unfortunately lunch was a quarter of an hour late, and during that
quarter of an hour the aunt and the nephew quarrelled. She had been
inveighing against the morning service, and he quietly and deliberately
replied, "If organized religion is anything--and it is something to
me--it will not be wrecked by a harmonium and a dull sermon."

Mrs. Failing frowned. "I envy you. It is a great thing to have no sense
of beauty."

"I think I have a sense of beauty, which leads me astray if I am not
careful."

"But this is a great relief to me. I thought the present day young man
was an agnostic! Isn't agnosticism all the thing at Cambridge?"

"Nothing is the 'thing' at Cambridge. If a few men are agnostic there,
it is for some grave reason, not because they are irritated with the way
the parson says his vowels."

Agnes intervened. "Well, I side with Aunt Emily. I believe in ritual."

"Don't, my dear, side with me. He will only say you have no sense of
religion either."

"Excuse me," said Rickie, perhaps he too was a little hungry,--"I never
suggested such a thing. I never would suggest such a thing. Why cannot
you understand my position? I almost feel it is that you won't."

"I try to understand your position night and day dear--what you mean,
what you like, why you came to Cadover, and why you stop here when my
presence is so obviously unpleasing to you."

"Luncheon is served," said Leighton, but he said it too late. They
discussed the beef and the moselle in silence. The air was heavy and
ominous. Even the Wonham boy was affected by it, shivered at times,
choked once, and hastened anew into the sun. He could not understand
clever people.

Agnes, in a brief anxious interview, advised the culprit to take a
solitary walk. She would stop near Aunt Emily, and pave the way for an
apology.

"Don't worry too much. It doesn't really matter."

"I suppose not, dear. But it seems a pity, considering we are so near
the end of our visit."

"Rudeness and Grossness matter, and I've shown both, and already I'm
sorry, and I hope she'll let me apologize. But from the selfish point of
view it doesn't matter a straw. She's no more to us than the Wonham boy
or the boot boy."

"Which way will you walk?"

"I think to that entrenchment. Look at it." They were sitting on the
steps. He stretched out his hand to Cadsbury Rings, and then let it rest
for a moment on her shoulder. "You're changing me," he said gently. "God
bless you for it."

He enjoyed his walk. Cadford was a charming village and for a time he
hung over the bridge by the mill. So clear was the stream that it seemed
not water at all, but some invisible quintessence in which the happy
minnows and the weeds were vibrating. And he paused again at the Roman
crossing, and thought for a moment of the unknown child. The line curved
suddenly: certainly it was dangerous. Then he lifted his eyes to the
down. The entrenchment showed like the rim of a saucer, and over
its narrow line peeped the summit of the central tree. It looked
interesting. He hurried forward, with the wind behind him.

The Rings were curious rather than impressive. Neither embankment was
over twelve feet high, and the grass on them had not the exquisite
green of Old Sarum, but was grey and wiry. But Nature (if she arranges
anything) had arranged that from them, at all events, there should be a
view. The whole system of the country lay spread before Rickie, and he
gained an idea of it that he never got in his elaborate ride. He saw how
all the water converges at Salisbury; how Salisbury lies in a shallow
basin, just at the change of the soil. He saw to the north the Plain,
and the stream of the Cad flowing down from it, with a tributary that
broke out suddenly, as the chalk streams do: one village had clustered
round the source and clothed itself with trees. He saw Old Sarum, and
hints of the Avon valley, and the land above Stone Henge. And behind him
he saw the great wood beginning unobtrusively, as if the down too needed
shaving; and into it the road to London slipped, covering the bushes
with white dust. Chalk made the dust white, chalk made the water clear,
chalk made the clean rolling outlines of the land, and favoured the
grass and the distant coronals of trees. Here is the heart of our
island: the Chilterns, the North Downs, the South Downs radiate hence.
The fibres of England unite in Wiltshire, and did we condescend to
worship her, here we should erect our national shrine.

People at that time were trying to think imperially, Rickie wondered how
they did it, for he could not imagine a place larger than England.
And other people talked of Italy, the spiritual fatherland of us all.
Perhaps Italy would prove marvellous. But at present he conceived it as
something exotic, to be admired and reverenced, but not to be loved like
these unostentatious fields. He drew out a book, it was natural for him
to read when he was happy, and to read out loud,--and for a little time
his voice disturbed the silence of that glorious afternoon. The book was
Shelley, and it opened at a passage that he had cherished greatly two
years before, and marked as "very good."

"I never was attached to that great sect Whose doctrine is that each one
should select Out of the world a mistress or a friend, And all the rest,
though fair and wise, commend To cold oblivion,--though it is the code
Of modern morals, and the beaten road Which those poor slaves with weary
footsteps tread Who travel to their home among the dead By the broad
highway of the world,--and so With one sad friend, perhaps a jealous
foe, The dreariest and the longest journey go."

It was "very good"--fine poetry, and, in a sense, true. Yet he was
surprised that he had ever selected it so vehemently. This afternoon it
seemed a little inhuman. Half a mile off two lovers were keeping company
where all the villagers could see them. They cared for no one else;
they felt only the pressure of each other, and so progressed, silent
and oblivious, across the land. He felt them to be nearer the truth
than Shelley. Even if they suffered or quarrelled, they would have been
nearer the truth. He wondered whether they were Henry Adams and Jessica
Thompson, both of this parish, whose banns had been asked for the second
time in the church this morning. Why could he not marry on fifteen
shillings a-week? And be looked at them with respect, and wished that he
was not a cumbersome gentleman.

Presently he saw something less pleasant--his aunt's pony carriage. It
had crossed the railway, and was advancing up the Roman road along by
the straw sacks. His impulse was to retreat, but someone waved to him.
It was Agnes. She waved continually, as much as to say, "Wait for us."
Mrs. Failing herself raised the whip in a nonchalant way. Stephen Wonham
was following on foot, some way behind. He put the Shelley back into his
pocket and waited for them. When the carriage stopped by some hurdles
he went down from the embankment and helped them to dismount. He felt
rather nervous.

His aunt gave him one of her disquieting smiles, but said pleasantly
enough, "Aren't the Rings a little immense? Agnes and I came here
because we wanted an antidote to the morning service."

"Pang!" said the church bell suddenly; "pang! pang!" It sounded petty
and ludicrous. They all laughed. Rickie blushed, and Agnes, with a
glance that said "apologize," darted away to the entrenchment, as though
unable to restrain her curiosity.

"The pony won't move," said Mrs. Failing. "Leave him for Stephen to tie
up. Will you walk me to the tree in the middle? Booh! I'm tired. Give me
your arm--unless you're tired as well."

"No. I came out partly in the hope of helping you."

"How sweet of you." She contrasted his blatant unselfishness with the
hardness of Stephen. Stephen never came out to help you. But if you got
hold of him he was some good. He didn't wobble and bend at the critical
moment. Her fancy compared Rickie to the cracked church bell sending
forth its message of "Pang! pang!" to the countryside, and Stephen to
the young pagans who were said to lie under this field guarding their
pagan gold.

"This place is full of ghosties," she remarked; "have you seen any yet?"

"I've kept on the outer rim so far."

"Let's go to the tree in the centre."

"Here's the path." The bank of grass where he had sat was broken by a
gap, through which chariots had entered, and farm carts entered now. The
track, following the ancient track, led straight through turnips to a
similar gap in the second circle, and thence continued, through more
turnips, to the central tree.

"Pang!" said the bell, as they paused at the entrance.

"You needn't unharness," shouted Mrs. Failing, for Stephen was
approaching the carriage.

"Yes, I will," he retorted.

"You will, will you?" she murmured with a smile. "I wish your brother
wasn't quite so uppish. Let's get on. Doesn't that church distract you?"

"It's so faint here," said Rickie. And it sounded fainter inside, though
the earthwork was neither thick nor tall; and the view, though not
hidden, was greatly diminished. He was reminded for a minute of that
chalk pit near Madingley, whose ramparts excluded the familiar world.
Agnes was here, as she had once been there. She stood on the farther
barrier, waiting to receive them when they had traversed the heart of
the camp.

"Admire my mangel-wurzels," said Mrs. Failing. "They are said to grow
so splendidly on account of the dead soldiers. Isn't it a sweet thought?
Need I say it is your brother's?"

"Wonham's?" he suggested. It was the second time that she had made the
little slip. She nodded, and he asked her what kind of ghosties haunted
this curious field.

"The D.," was her prompt reply. "He leans against the tree in the
middle, especially on Sunday afternoons and all the worshippers rise
through the turnips and dance round him."

"Oh, these were decent people," he replied, looking downwards--"soldiers
and shepherds. They have no ghosts. They worshipped Mars or Pan-Erda
perhaps; not the devil."

"Pang!" went the church, and was silent, for the afternoon service
had begun. They entered the second entrenchment, which was in height,
breadth, and composition, similar to the first, and excluded still more
of the view. His aunt continued friendly. Agnes stood watching them.

"Soldiers may seem decent in the past," she continued, "but wait till
they turn into Tommies from Bulford Camp, who rob the chickens."

"I don't mind Bulford Camp," said Rickie, looking, though in vain, for
signs of its snowy tents. "The men there are the sons of the men here,
and have come back to the old country. War's horrible, yet one loves all
continuity. And no one could mind a shepherd."

"Indeed! What about your brother--a shepherd if ever there was? Look how
he bores you! Don't be so sentimental."

"But--oh, you mean--"

"Your brother Stephen."

He glanced at her nervously. He had never known her so queer before.
Perhaps it was some literary allusion that he had not caught; but her
face did not at that moment suggest literature. In the differential
tones that one uses to an old and infirm person he said "Stephen Wonham
isn't my brother, Aunt Emily."

"My dear, you're that precise. One can't say 'half-brother' every time."

They approached the central tree.

"How you do puzzle me," he said, dropping her arm and beginning to
laugh. "How could I have a half-brother?"

She made no answer.

Then a horror leapt straight at him, and he beat it back and said,
"I will not be frightened." The tree in the centre revolved, the tree
disappeared, and he saw a room--the room where his father had lived in
town. "Gently," he told himself, "gently." Still laughing, he said, "I,
with a brother-younger it's not possible." The horror leapt again, and
he exclaimed, "It's a foul lie!"

"My dear, my dear!"

"It's a foul lie! He wasn't--I won't stand--"

"My dear, before you say several noble things, remember that it's worse
for him than for you--worse for your brother, for your half-brother, for
your younger brother."

But he heard her no longer. He was gazing at the past, which he had
praised so recently, which gaped ever wider, like an unhallowed grave.
Turn where he would, it encircled him. It took visible form: it was this
double entrenchment of the Rings. His mouth went cold, and he knew that
he was going to faint among the dead. He started running, missed the
exit, stumbled on the inner barrier, fell into darkness--

"Get his head down," said a voice. "Get the blood back into him.
That's all he wants. Leave him to me. Elliot!"--the blood was
returning--"Elliot, wake up!"

He woke up. The earth he had dreaded lay close to his eyes, and seemed
beautiful. He saw the structure of the clods. A tiny beetle swung on
the grass blade. On his own neck a human hand pressed, guiding the blood
back to his brain.

There broke from him a cry, not of horror but of acceptance. For one
short moment he understood. "Stephen--" he began, and then he heard his
own name called: "Rickie! Rickie!" Agnes hurried from her post on the
margin, and, as if understanding also, caught him to her breast.

Stephen offered to help them further, but finding that he made things
worse, he stepped aside to let them pass and then sauntered inwards. The
whole field, with concentric circles, was visible, and the broad leaves
of the turnips rustled in the gathering wind. Miss Pembroke and Elliot
were moving towards the Cadover entrance. Mrs. Failing stood watching in
her turn on the opposite bank. He was not an inquisitive boy; but as he
leant against the tree he wondered what it was all about, and whether he
would ever know.



XIV

On the way back--at that very level-crossing where he had paused on
his upward route--Rickie stopped suddenly and told the girl why he had
fainted. Hitherto she had asked him in vain. His tone had gone from him,
and he told her harshly and brutally, so that she started away with
a horrified cry. Then his manner altered, and he exclaimed: "Will you
mind? Are you going to mind?"

"Of course I mind," she whispered. She turned from him, and saw up on
the sky-line two figures that seemed to be of enormous size.

"They're watching us. They stand on the edge watching us. This country's
so open--you--you can't they watch us wherever we go. Of course you
mind."

They heard the rumble of the train, and she pulled herself together.
"Come, dearest, we shall be run over next. We're saying things that have
no sense." But on the way back he repeated: "They can still see us. They
can see every inch of this road. They watch us for ever." And when they
arrived at the steps there, sure enough, were still the two figures
gazing from the outer circle of the Rings.

She made him go to his room at once: he was almost hysterical. Leighton
brought out some tea for her, and she sat drinking it on the little
terrace. Of course she minded.

Again she was menaced by the abnormal. All had seemed so fair and so
simple, so in accordance with her ideas; and then, like a corpse, this
horror rose up to the surface. She saw the two figures descend and pause
while one of them harnessed the pony; she saw them drive downward, and
knew that before long she must face them and the world. She glanced at
her engagement ring.

When the carriage drove up Mrs. Failing dismounted, but did not speak.
It was Stephen who inquired after Rickie. She, scarcely knowing the
sound of her own voice, replied that he was a little tired.

"Go and put up the pony," said Mrs. Failing rather sharply.

"Agnes, give me some tea."

"It is rather strong," said Agnes as the carriage drove off and left
them alone. Then she noticed that Mrs. Failing herself was agitated. Her
lips were trembling, and she saw the boy depart with manifest relief.

"Do you know," she said hurriedly, as if talking against time--"Do you
know what upset Rickie?"

"I do indeed know."

"Has he told any one else?"

"I believe not."

"Agnes--have I been a fool?"

"You have been very unkind," said the girl, and her eyes filled with
tears.

For a moment Mrs. Failing was annoyed. "Unkind? I do not see that at
all. I believe in looking facts in the face. Rickie must know his ghosts
some time. Why not this afternoon?"

She rose with quiet dignity, but her tears came faster. "That is not so.
You told him to hurt him. I cannot think what you did it for. I suppose
because he was rude to you after church. It is a mean, cowardly revenge.

"What--what if it's a lie?"

"Then, Mrs. Failing, it is sickening of you. There is no other word.
Sickening. I am sorry--a nobody like myself--to speak like this. How
COULD you, oh, how could you demean yourself? Why, not even a poor
person--Her indignation was fine and genuine. But her tears fell no
longer. Nothing menaced her if they were not really brothers.

"It is not a lie, my clear; sit down. I will swear so much solemnly. It
is not a lie, but--"

Agnes waited.

"--we can call it a lie if we choose."

"I am not so childish. You have said it, and we must all suffer. You
have had your fun: I conclude you did it for fun. You cannot go
back. He--" She pointed towards the stables, and could not finish her
sentence.

"I have not been a fool twice."

Agnes did not understand.

"My dense lady, can't you follow? I have not told Stephen one single
word, neither before nor now."

There was a long silence.

Indeed, Mrs. Failing was in an awkward position.

Rickie had irritated her, and, in her desire to shock him, she had
imperilled her own peace. She had felt so unconventional upon the
hillside, when she loosed the horror against him; but now it was
darting at her as well. Suppose the scandal came out. Stephen, who was
absolutely without delicacy, would tell it to the people as soon as tell
them the time. His paganism would be too assertive; it might even be in
bad taste. After all, she had a prominent position in the neighbourhood;
she was talked about, respected, looked up to. After all, she was
growing old. And therefore, though she had no true regard for Rickie,
nor for Agnes, nor for Stephen, nor for Stephen's parents, in whose
tragedy she had assisted, yet she did feel that if the scandal revived
it would disturb the harmony of Cadover, and therefore tried to retrace
her steps. It is easy to say shocking things: it is so different to be
connected with anything shocking. Life and death were not involved, but
comfort and discomfort were.

The silence was broken by the sound of feet on the gravel. Agnes said
hastily, "Is that really true--that he knows nothing?"

"You, Rickie, and I are the only people alive that know. He realizes
what he is--with a precision that is sometimes alarming. Who he is, he
doesn't know and doesn't care. I suppose he would know when I'm dead.
There are papers."

"Aunt Emily, before he comes, may I say to you I'm sorry I was so rude?"

Mrs. Failing had not disliked her courage. "My dear, you may. We're all
off our hinges this Sunday. Sit down by me again."

Agnes obeyed, and they awaited the arrival of Stephen. They were clever
enough to understand each other. The thing must be hushed up. The matron
must repair the consequences of her petulance. The girl must hide the
stain in her future husband's family. Why not? Who was injured? What
does a grown-up man want with a grown brother? Rickie upstairs, how
grateful he would be to them for saving him.

"Stephen!"

"Yes."

"I'm tired of you. Go and bathe in the sea."

"All right."

And the whole thing was settled. She liked no fuss, and so did he. He
sat down on the step to tighten his bootlaces. Then he would be ready.
Mrs. Failing laid two or three sovereigns on the step above him. Agnes
tried to make conversation, and said, with averted eyes, that the sea
was a long way off.

"The sea's downhill. That's all I know about it." He swept up the money
with a word of pleasure: he was kept like a baby in such things. Then he
started off, but slowly, for he meant to walk till the morning.

"He will be gone days," said Mrs. Failing. "The comedy is finished. Let
us come in."

She went to her room. The storm that she had raised had shattered
her. Yet, because it was stilled for a moment, she resumed her old
emancipated manner, and spoke of it as a comedy.

As for Miss Pembroke, she pretended to be emancipated no longer. People
like "Stephen Wonham" were social thunderbolts, to be shunned at all
costs, or at almost all costs. Her joy was now unfeigned, and she
hurried upstairs to impart it to Rickie.

"I don't think we are rewarded if we do right, but we are punished if
we lie. It's the fashion to laugh at poetic justice, but I do believe
in half of it. Cast bitter bread upon the waters, and after many days it
really will come back to you." These were the words of Mr. Failing. They
were also the opinions of Stewart Ansell, another unpractical person.
Rickie was trying to write to him when she entered with the good news.

"Dear, we're saved! He doesn't know, and he never is to know. I can't
tell you how glad I am. All the time we saw them standing together up
there, she wasn't telling him at all. She was keeping him out of the
way, in case you let it out. Oh, I like her! She may be unwise, but she
is nice, really. She said, 'I've been a fool but I haven't been a fool
twice.' You must forgive her, Rickie. I've forgiven her, and she me; for
at first I was so angry with her. Oh, my darling boy, I am so glad!"

He was shivering all over, and could not reply. At last he said, "Why
hasn't she told him?"

"Because she has come to her senses."

"But she can't behave to people like that. She must tell him."

"Because he must be told such a real thing."

"Such a real thing?" the girl echoed, screwing up her forehead.
"But--but you don't mean you're glad about it?"

His head bowed over the letter. "My God--no! But it's a real thing. She
must tell him. I nearly told him myself--up there--when he made me look
at the ground, but you happened to prevent me."

How Providence had watched over them!

"She won't tell him. I know that much."

"Then, Agnes, darling"--he drew her to the table "we must talk together
a little. If she won't, then we ought to."

"WE tell him?" cried the girl, white with horror. "Tell him now, when
everything has been comfortably arranged?"

"You see, darling"--he took hold of her hand--"what one must do is to
think the thing out and settle what's right, I'm still all trembling and
stupid. I see it mixed up with other things. I want you to help me.
It seems to me that here and there in life we meet with a person or
incident that is symbolical. It's nothing in itself, yet for the moment
it stands for some eternal principle. We accept it, at whatever costs,
and we have accepted life. But if we are frightened and reject it, the
moment, so to speak, passes; the symbol is never offered again. Is this
nonsense? Once before a symbol was offered to me--I shall not tell you
how; but I did accept it, and cherished it through much anxiety and
repulsion, and in the end I am rewarded. There will be no reward this
time. I think, from such a man--the son of such a man. But I want to do
what is right."

"Because doing right is its own reward," said Agnes anxiously.

"I do not think that. I have seen few examples of it. Doing right is
simply doing right."

"I think that all you say is wonderfully clever; but since you ask me,
it IS nonsense, dear Rickie, absolutely."

"Thank you," he said humbly, and began to stroke her hand. "But all my
disgust; my indignation with my father, my love for--" He broke off; he
could not bear to mention the name of his mother. "I was trying to say,
I oughtn't to follow these impulses too much. There are others things.
Truth. Our duty to acknowledge each man accurately, however vile he
is. And apart from ideals" (here she had won the battle), "and leaving
ideals aside, I couldn't meet him and keep silent. It isn't in me. I
should blurt it out."

"But you won't meet him!" she cried. "It's all been arranged. We've
sent him to the sea. Isn't it splendid? He's gone. My own boy won't
be fantastic, will he?" Then she fought the fantasy on its own ground.
"And, bye the bye, what you call the 'symbolic moment' is over. You had
it up by the Rings. You tried to tell him, I interrupted you. It's not
your fault. You did all you could."

She thought this excellent logic, and was surprised that he looked so
gloomy. "So he's gone to the sea. For the present that does settle it.
Has Aunt Emily talked about him yet?"

"No. Ask her tomorrow if you wish to know. Ask her kindly. It would be
so dreadful if you did not part friends, and--"

"What's that?"

It was Stephen calling up from the drive. He had come back. Agnes threw
out her hand in despair.

"Elliot!" the voice called.

They were facing each other, silent and motionless. Then Rickie advanced
to the window. The girl darted in front of him. He thought he had never
seen her so beautiful. She was stopping his advance quite frankly, with
widespread arms.

"Elliot!"

He moved forward--into what? He pretended to himself he would rather see
his brother before he answered; that it was easier to acknowledge him
thus. But at the back of his soul he knew that the woman had conquered,
and that he was moving forward to acknowledge her. "If he calls me
again--" he thought.

"Elliot!"

"Well, if he calls me once again, I will answer him, vile as he is."

He did not call again.

Stephen had really come back for some tobacco, but as he passed under
the windows he thought of the poor fellow who had been "nipped" (nothing
serious, said Mrs. Failing), and determined to shout good-bye to him.
And once or twice, as he followed the river into the darkness, he
wondered what it was like to be so weak,--not to ride, not to swim, not
to care for anything but books and a girl.

They embraced passionately. The danger had brought them very near to
each other. They both needed a home to confront the menacing tumultuous
world. And what weary years of work, of waiting, lay between them and
that home! Still holding her fast, he said, "I was writing to Ansell
when you came in."

"Do you owe him a letter?"

"No." He paused. "I was writing to tell him about this. He would help
us. He always picks out the important point."

"Darling, I don't like to say anything, and I know that Mr. Ansell
would keep a secret, but haven't we picked out the important point for
ourselves?"

He released her and tore the letter up.



XV

The sense of purity is a puzzling and at times a fearful thing. It seems
so noble, and it starts as one with morality. But it is a dangerous
guide, and can lead us away not only from what is gracious, but also
from what is good. Agnes, in this tangle, had followed it blindly,
partly because she was a woman, and it meant more to her than it
can ever mean to a man; partly because, though dangerous, it is also
obvious, and makes no demand upon the intellect. She could not feel that
Stephen had full human rights. He was illicit, abnormal, worse than a
man diseased. And Rickie remembering whose son he was, gradually adopted
her opinion. He, too, came to be glad that his brother had passed from
him untried, that the symbolic moment had been rejected. Stephen was the
fruit of sin; therefore he was sinful, He, too, became a sexual snob.

And now he must hear the unsavoury details. That evening they sat in the
walled garden. Agues, according to arrangement, left him alone with his
aunt. He asked her, and was not answered.

"You are shocked," she said in a hard, mocking voice, "It is very nice
of you to be shocked, and I do not wish to grieve you further. We will
not allude to it again. Let us all go on just as we are. The comedy is
finished."

He could not tolerate this. His nerves were shattered, and all that was
good in him revolted as well. To the horror of Agnes, who was within
earshot, he replied, "You used to puzzle me, Aunt Emily, but I
understand you at last. You have forgotten what other people are like.
Continual selfishness leads to that. I am sure of it. I see now how you
look at the world. 'Nice of me to be shocked!' I want to go tomorrow, if
I may."

"Certainly, dear. The morning trains are the best." And so the
disastrous visit ended.

As he walked back to the house he met a certain poor woman, whose child
Stephen had rescued at the level-crossing, and who had decided, after
some delay, that she must thank the kind gentleman in person. "He has
got some brute courage," thought Rickie, "and it was decent of him not
to boast about it." But he had labelled the boy as "Bad," and it was
convenient to revert to his good qualities as seldom as possible. He
preferred to brood over his coarseness, his caddish ingratitude, his
irreligion. Out of these he constructed a repulsive figure, forgetting
how slovenly his own perceptions had been during the past week, how
dogmatic and intolerant his attitude to all that was not Love.

During the packing he was obliged to go up to the attic to find the
Dryad manuscript which had never been returned. Leighton came too, and
for about half an hour they hunted in the flickering light of a candle.
It was a strange, ghostly place, and Rickie was quite startled when a
picture swung towards him, and he saw the Demeter of Cnidus, shimmering
and grey. Leighton suggested the roof. Mr. Stephen sometimes left
things on the roof. So they climbed out of the skylight--the night was
perfectly still--and continued the search among the gables. Enormous
stars hung overhead, and the roof was bounded by chasms, impenetrable
and black. "It doesn't matter," said Rickie, suddenly convinced of the
futility of all that he did. "Oh, let us look properly," said Leighton,
a kindly, pliable man, who had tried to shirk coming, but who was
genuinely sympathetic now that he had come. They were rewarded: the
manuscript lay in a gutter, charred and smudged.

The rest of the year was spent by Rickie partly in bed,--he had a
curious breakdown,--partly in the attempt to get his little stories
published. He had written eight or nine, and hoped they would make up
a book, and that the book might be called "Pan Pipes." He was very
energetic over this; he liked to work, for some imperceptible bloom had
passed from the world, and he no longer found such acute pleasure in
people. Mrs. Failing's old publishers, to whom the book was submitted,
replied that, greatly as they found themselves interested, they did not
see their way to making an offer at present. They were very polite, and
singled out for special praise "Andante Pastorale," which Rickie had
thought too sentimental, but which Agnes had persuaded him to include.
The stories were sent to another publisher, who considered them for six
weeks, and then returned them. A fragment of red cotton, Placed by Agnes
between the leaves, had not shifted its position.

"Can't you try something longer, Rickie?" she said; "I believe we're on
the wrong track. Try an out--and--out love-story."

"My notion just now," he replied, "is to leave the passions on the
fringe." She nodded, and tapped for the waiter: they had met in a
London restaurant. "I can't soar; I can only indicate. That's where
the musicians have the pull, for music has wings, and when she says
'Tristan' and he says 'Isolde,' you are on the heights at once. What do
people mean when they call love music artificial?"

"I know what they mean, though I can't exactly explain. Or couldn't
you make your stories more obvious? I don't see any harm in that. Uncle
Willie floundered hopelessly. He doesn't read much, and he got muddled.
I had to explain, and then he was delighted. Of course, to write down to
the public would be quite another thing and horrible. You have certain
ideas, and you must express them. But couldn't you express them more
clearly?"

"You see--" He got no further than "you see."

"The soul and the body. The soul's what matters," said Agnes, and tapped
for the waiter again. He looked at her admiringly, but felt that she was
not a perfect critic. Perhaps she was too perfect to be a critic. Actual
life might seem to her so real that she could not detect the union of
shadow and adamant that men call poetry. He would even go further and
acknowledge that she was not as clever as himself--and he was stupid
enough! She did not like discussing anything or reading solid books, and
she was a little angry with such women as did. It pleased him to make
these concessions, for they touched nothing in her that he valued. He
looked round the restaurant, which was in Soho and decided that she was
incomparable.

"At half-past two I call on the editor of the 'Holborn.' He's got a
stray story to look at, and he's written about it."

"Oh, Rickie! Rickie! Why didn't you put on a boiled shirt!"

He laughed, and teased her. "'The soul's what matters. We literary
people don't care about dress."

"Well, you ought to care. And I believe you do. Can't you change?"

"Too far." He had rooms in South Kensington. "And I've forgot my
card-case. There's for you!"

She shook her head. "Naughty, naughty boy! Whatever will you do?"

"Send in my name, or ask for a bit of paper and write it. Hullo! that's
Tilliard!"

Tilliard blushed, partly on account of the faux pas he had made last
June, partly on account of the restaurant. He explained how he came to
be pigging in Soho: it was so frightfully convenient and so frightfully
cheap.

"Just why Rickie brings me," said Miss Pembroke.

"And I suppose you're here to study life?" said Tilliard, sitting down.

"I don't know," said Rickie, gazing round at the waiters and the guests.

"Doesn't one want to see a good deal of life for writing? There's life
of a sort in Soho,--Un peu de faisan, s'il vows plait."

Agnes also grabbed at the waiter, and paid. She always did the paying,
Rickie muddled with his purse.

"I'm cramming," pursued Tilliard, "and so naturally I come into contact
with very little at present. But later on I hope to see things." He
blushed a little, for he was talking for Rickie's edification. "It is
most frightfully important not to get a narrow or academic outlook,
don't you think? A person like Ansell, who goes from Cambridge,
home--home, Cambridge--it must tell on him in time."

"But Mr. Ansell is a philosopher."

"A very kinky one," said Tilliard abruptly. "Not my idea of a
philosopher. How goes his dissertation?"

"He never answers my letters," replied Rickie. "He never would. I've
heard nothing since June."

"It's a pity he sends in this year. There are so many good people in.
He'd have afar better chance if he waited."

"So I said, but he wouldn't wait. He's so keen about this particular
subject."

"What is it?" asked Agnes.

"About things being real, wasn't it, Tilliard?"

"That's near enough."

"Well, good luck to him!" said the girl. "And good luck to you, Mr.
Tilliard! Later on, I hope, we'll meet again."

They parted. Tilliard liked her, though he did not feel that she was
quite in his couche sociale. His sister, for instance, would never have
been lured into a Soho restaurant--except for the experience of the
thing. Tilliard's couche sociale permitted experiences. Provided his
heart did not go out to the poor and the unorthodox, he might stare at
them as much as he liked. It was seeing life.

Agnes put her lover safely into an omnibus at Cambridge Circus. She
shouted after him that his tie was rising over his collar, but he
did not hear her. For a moment she felt depressed, and pictured quite
accurately the effect that his appearance would have on the editor. The
editor was a tall neat man of forty, slow of speech, slow of soul, and
extraordinarily kind. He and Rickie sat over a fire, with an enormous
table behind them whereon stood many books waiting to be reviewed.

"I'm sorry," he said, and paused.

Rickie smiled feebly.

"Your story does not convince." He tapped it. "I have read it with very
great pleasure. It convinces in parts, but it does not convince as a
whole; and stories, don't you think, ought to convince as a whole?"

"They ought indeed," said Rickie, and plunged into self-depreciation.
But the editor checked him.

"No--no. Please don't talk like that. I can't bear to hear any one talk
against imagination. There are countless openings for imagination,--for
the mysterious, for the supernatural, for all the things you are trying
to do, and which, I hope, you will succeed in doing. I'm not OBJECTING
to imagination; on the contrary, I'd advise you to cultivate it, to
accent it. Write a really good ghost story and we'd take it at once.
Or"--he suggested it as an alternative to imagination--"or you might get
inside life. It's worth doing."

"Life?" echoed Rickie anxiously.

He looked round the pleasant room, as if life might be fluttering there
like an imprisoned bird. Then he looked at the editor: perhaps he was
sitting inside life at this very moment. "See life, Mr. Elliot, and then
send us another story." He held out his hand. "I am sorry I have to say
'No, thank you'; it's so much nicer to say, 'Yes, please.'" He laid his
hand on the young man's sleeve, and added, "Well, the interview's not
been so alarming after all, has it?"

"I don't think that either of us is a very alarming person," was not
Rickie's reply. It was what he thought out afterwards in the omnibus.
His reply was "Ow," delivered with a slight giggle.

As he rumbled westward, his face was drawn, and his eyes moved quickly
to the right and left, as if he would discover something in the squalid
fashionable streets some bird on the wing, some radiant archway, the
face of some god beneath a beaver hat. He loved, he was loved, he had
seen death and other things; but the heart of all things was hidden.
There was a password and he could not learn it, nor could the kind
editor of the "Holborn" teach him. He sighed, and then sighed more
piteously. For had he not known the password once--known it and
forgotten it already? But at this point his fortunes become intimately
connected with those of Mr. Pembroke.




PART 2 -- SAWSTON


XVI

In three years Mr. Pembroke had done much to solidify the day-boys
at Sawston School. If they were not solid, they were at all events
curdling, and his activities might reasonably turn elsewhere. He had
served the school for many years, and it was really time he should be
entrusted with a boarding-house. The headmaster, an impulsive man who
darted about like a minnow and gave his mother a great deal of trouble,
agreed with him, and also agreed with Mrs. Jackson when she said that
Mr. Jackson had served the school for many years and that it was really
time he should be entrusted with a boarding-house. Consequently, when
Dunwood House fell vacant the headmaster found himself in rather a
difficult position.

Dunwood House was the largest and most lucrative of the boarding-houses.
It stood almost opposite the school buildings. Originally it had been
a villa residence--a red-brick villa, covered with creepers and crowned
with terracotta dragons. Mr. Annison, founder of its glory, had lived
here, and had had one or two boys to live with him. Times changed. The
fame of the bishops blazed brighter, the school increased, the one or
two boys became a dozen, and an addition was made to Dunwood House that
more than doubled its size. A huge new building, replete with every
convenience, was stuck on to its right flank. Dormitories, cubicles,
studies, a preparation-room, a dining-room, parquet floors, hot-air
pipes--no expense was spared, and the twelve boys roamed over it like
princes. Baize doors communicated on every floor with Mr. Annison's
part, and he, an anxious gentleman, would stroll backwards and forwards,
a little depressed at the hygienic splendours, and conscious of some
vanished intimacy. Somehow he had known his boys better when they had
all muddled together as one family, and algebras lay strewn upon the
drawing room chairs. As the house filled, his interest in it decreased.
When he retired--which he did the same summer that Rickie left
Cambridge--it had already passed the summit of excellence and was
beginning to decline. Its numbers were still satisfactory, and for a
little time it would subsist on its past reputation. But that mysterious
asset the tone had lowered, and it was therefore of great importance
that Mr. Annison's successor should be a first-class man. Mr. Coates,
who came next in seniority, was passed over, and rightly. The choice lay
between Mr. Pembroke and Mr. Jackson, the one an organizer, the other a
humanist. Mr. Jackson was master of the Sixth, and--with the exception
of the headmaster, who was too busy to impart knowledge--the only
first-class intellect in the school. But he could not or rather would
not, keep order. He told his form that if it chose to listen to him it
would learn; if it didn't, it wouldn't. One half listened. The other
half made paper frogs, and bored holes in the raised map of Italy with
their penknives. When the penknives gritted he punished them with undue
severity, and then forgot to make them show the punishments up. Yet out
of this chaos two facts emerged. Half the boys got scholarships at
the University, and some of them--including several of the paper-frog
sort--remained friends with him throughout their lives. Moreover, he was
rich, and had a competent wife. His claim to Dunwood House was stronger
than one would have supposed.

The qualifications of Mr. Pembroke have already been indicated. They
prevailed--but under conditions. If things went wrong, he must promise
to resign.

"In the first place," said the headmaster, "you are doing so splendidly
with the day-boys. Your attitude towards the parents is magnificent.
I--don't know how to replace you there. Whereas, of course, the parents
of a boarder--"

"Of course," said Mr. Pembroke.

The parent of a boarder, who only had to remove his son if he was
discontented with the school, was naturally in a more independent
position than the parent who had brought all his goods and chattels to
Sawston, and was renting a house there.

"Now the parents of boarders--this is my second point--practically
demand that the house-master should have a wife."

"A most unreasonable demand," said Mr. Pembroke.

"To my mind also a bright motherly matron is quite sufficient. But that
is what they demand. And that is why--do you see?--we HAVE to regard
your appointment as experimental. Possibly Miss Pembroke will be able
to help you. Or I don't know whether if ever--" He left the sentence
unfinished. Two days later Mr. Pembroke proposed to Mrs. Orr.

He had always intended to marry when he could afford it; and once he
had been in love, violently in love, but had laid the passion aside, and
told it to wait till a more convenient season. This was, of course, the
proper thing to do, and prudence should have been rewarded. But when,
after the lapse of fifteen years, he went, as it were, to his spiritual
larder and took down Love from the top shelf to offer him to Mrs. Orr,
he was rather dismayed. Something had happened. Perhaps the god had
flown; perhaps he had been eaten by the rats. At all events, he was not
there.

Mr. Pembroke was conscientious and romantic, and knew that marriage
without love is intolerable. On the other hand, he could not admit
that love had vanished from him. To admit this, would argue that he had
deteriorated.

Whereas he knew for a fact that he had improved, year by year. Each year
be grew more moral, more efficient, more learned, more genial. So how
could he fail to be more loving? He did not speak to himself as follows,
because he never spoke to himself; but the following notions moved in
the recesses of his mind: "It is not the fire of youth. But I am not
sure that I approve of the fire of youth. Look at my sister! Once she
has suffered, twice she has been most imprudent, and put me to great
inconvenience besides, for if she was stopping with me she would have
done the housekeeping. I rather suspect that it is a nobler, riper
emotion that I am laying at the feet of Mrs. Orr." It never took him
long to get muddled, or to reverse cause and effect. In a short time he
believed that he had been pining for years, and only waiting for this
good fortune to ask the lady to share it with him.

Mrs. Orr was quiet, clever, kindly, capable, and amusing and they were
old acquaintances. Altogether it was not surprising that he should ask
her to be his wife, nor very surprising that she should refuse. But
she refused with a violence that alarmed them both. He left her house
declaring that he had been insulted, and she, as soon as he left, passed
from disgust into tears.

He was much annoyed. There was a certain Miss Herriton who, though far
inferior to Mrs. Orr, would have done instead of her. But now it was
impossible. He could not go offering himself about Sawston. Having
engaged a matron who had the reputation for being bright and motherly,
he moved into Dunwood House and opened the Michaelmas term. Everything
went wrong. The cook left; the boys had a disease called roseola; Agnes,
who was still drunk with her engagement, was of no assistance, but kept
flying up to London to push Rickie's fortunes; and, to crown everything,
the matron was too bright and not motherly enough: she neglected the
little boys and was overattentive to the big ones. She left abruptly,
and the voice of Mrs. Jackson arose, prophesying disaster.

Should he avert it by taking orders? Parents do not demand that a
house-master should be a clergyman, yet it reassures them when he is.
And he would have to take orders some time, if he hoped for a school
of his own. His religious convictions were ready to hand, but he spent
several uncomfortable days hunting up his religious enthusiasms. It
was not unlike his attempt to marry Mrs. Orr. But his piety was more
genuine, and this time he never came to the point. His sense of decency
forbade him hurrying into a Church that he reverenced. Moreover, he
thought of another solution: Agnes must marry Rickie in the Christmas
holidays, and they must come, both of them, to Sawston, she as
housekeeper, he as assistant-master. The girl was a good worker when
once she was settled down; and as for Rickie, he could easily be fitted
in somewhere in the school. He was not a good classic, but good enough
to take the Lower Fifth. He was no athlete, but boys might profitably
note that he was a perfect gentleman all the same. He had no experience,
but he would gain it. He had no decision, but he could simulate it.
"Above all," thought Mr. Pembroke, "it will be something regular for
him to do." Of course this was not "above all." Dunwood House held that
position. But Mr. Pembroke soon came to think that it was, and believed
that he was planning for Rickie, just as he had believed he was pining
for Mrs. Orr.

Agnes, when she got back from the lunch in Soho, was told of the plan.
She refused to give any opinion until she had seen her lover. A telegram
was sent to him, and next morning he arrived. He was very susceptible to
the weather, and perhaps it was unfortunate that the morning was foggy.
His train had been stopped outside Sawston Station, and there he had
sat for half an hour, listening to the unreal noises that came from the
line, and watching the shadowy figures that worked there. The gas was
alight in the great drawing-room, and in its depressing rays he and
Agnes greeted each other, and discussed the most momentous question of
their lives. They wanted to be married: there was no doubt of that.
They wanted it, both of them, dreadfully. But should they marry on these
terms?

"I'd never thought of such a thing, you see. When the scholastic
agencies sent me circulars after the Tripos, I tore them up at once."

"There are the holidays," said Agnes. "You would have three months in
the year to yourself, and you could do your writing then."

"But who'll read what I've written?" and he told her about the editor of
the "Holborn."

She became extremely grave. At the bottom of her heart she had always
mistrusted the little stories, and now people who knew agreed with her.
How could Rickie, or any one, make a living by pretending that Greek
gods were alive, or that young ladies could vanish into trees? A
sparkling society tale, full of verve and pathos, would have been
another thing, and the editor might have been convinced by it.

"But what does he mean?" Rickie was saying. "What does he mean by life?"

"I know what he means, but I can't exactly explain. You ought to see
life, Rickie. I think he's right there. And Mr. Tilliard was right when
he said one oughtn't to be academic."

He stood in the twilight that fell from the window, she in the twilight
of the gas. "I wonder what Ansell would say," he murmured.

"Oh, poor Mr. Ansell!"

He was somewhat surprised. Why was Ansell poor? It was the first time
the epithet had been applied to him.

"But to change the conversation," said Agnes.

"If we did marry, we might get to Italy at Easter and escape this
horrible fog."

"Yes. Perhaps there--" Perhaps life would be there. He thought of Renan,
who declares that on the Acropolis at Athens beauty and wisdom do exist,
really exist, as external powers. He did not aspire to beauty or wisdom,
but he prayed to be delivered from the shadow of unreality that had
begun to darken the world. For it was as if some power had pronounced
against him--as if, by some heedless action, he had offended an Olympian
god. Like many another, he wondered whether the god might be appeased by
work--hard uncongenial work. Perhaps he had not worked hard enough,
or had enjoyed his work too much, and for that reason the shadow was
falling.

"--And above all, a schoolmaster has wonderful opportunities for doing
good; one mustn't forget that."

To do good! For what other reason are we here? Let us give up our
refined sensations, and our comforts, and our art, if thereby we can
make other people happier and better. The woman he loved had urged him
to do good! With a vehemence that surprised her, he exclaimed, "I'll do
it."

"Think it over," she cautioned, though she was greatly pleased.

"No; I think over things too much."

The room grew brighter. A boy's laughter floated in, and it seemed to
him that people were as important and vivid as they had been six months
before. Then he was at Cambridge, idling in the parsley meadows, and
weaving perishable garlands out of flowers. Now he was at Sawston,
preparing to work a beneficent machine. No man works for nothing, and
Rickie trusted that to him also benefits might accrue; that his wound
might heal as he laboured, and his eyes recapture the Holy Grail.



XVII

In practical matters Mr. Pembroke was often a generous man. He offered
Rickie a good salary, and insisted on paying Agnes as well. And as he
housed them for nothing, and as Rickie would also have a salary from the
school, the money question disappeared--if not forever, at all events
for the present.

"I can work you in," he said. "Leave all that to me, and in a few days
you shall hear from the headmaster. He shall create a vacancy. And once
in, we stand or fall together. I am resolved on that."

Rickie did not like the idea of being "worked in," but he was determined
to raise no difficulties. It is so easy to be refined and high-minded
when we have nothing to do. But the active, useful man cannot be equally
particular. Rickie's programme involved a change in values as well as a
change of occupation.

"Adopt a frankly intellectual attitude," Mr. Pembroke continued. "I do
not advise you at present even to profess any interest in athletics or
organization. When the headmaster writes, he will probably ask whether
you are an all-round man. Boldly say no. A bold 'no' is at times the
best. Take your stand upon classics and general culture."

Classics! A second in the Tripos. General culture. A smattering of
English Literature, and less than a smattering of French.

"That is how we begin. Then we get you a little post--say that of
librarian. And so on, until you are indispensable."

Rickie laughed; the headmaster wrote, the reply was satisfactory, and in
due course the new life began.

Sawston was already familiar to him. But he knew it as an amateur, and
under an official gaze it grouped itself afresh. The school, a bland
Gothic building, now showed as a fortress of learning, whose outworks
were the boarding-houses. Those straggling roads were full of the houses
of the parents of the day-boys. These shops were in bounds, those out.
How often had he passed Dunwood House! He had once confused it with its
rival, Cedar View. Now he was to live there--perhaps for many years.
On the left of the entrance a large saffron drawing-room, full of cosy
corners and dumpy chairs: here the parents would be received. On the
right of the entrance a study, which he shared with Herbert: here
the boys would be caned--he hoped not often. In the hall a framed
certificate praising the drains, the bust of Hermes, and a carved
teak monkey holding out a salver. Some of the furniture had come from
Shelthorpe, some had been bought from Mr. Annison, some of it was new.
But throughout he recognized a certain decision of arrangement. Nothing
in the house was accidental, or there merely for its own sake. He
contrasted it with his room at Cambridge, which had been a jumble of
things that he loved dearly and of things that he did not love at all.
Now these also had come to Dunwood House, and had been distributed where
each was seemly--Sir Percival to the drawing-room, the photograph of
Stockholm to the passage, his chair, his inkpot, and the portrait of his
mother to the study. And then he contrasted it with the Ansells' house,
to which their resolute ill-taste had given unity. He was extremely
sensitive to the inside of a house, holding it an organism that
expressed the thoughts, conscious and subconscious, of its inmates.
He was equally sensitive to places. He would compare Cambridge with
Sawston, and either with a third type of existence, to which, for want
of a better name, he gave the name of "Wiltshire."

It must not be thought that he is going to waste his time. These
contrasts and comparisons never took him long, and he never indulged
in them until the serious business of the day was over. And, as time
passed, he never indulged in them at all. The school returned at the
end of January, before he had been settled in a week. His health
had improved, but not greatly, and he was nervous at the prospect of
confronting the assembled house. All day long cabs had been driving
up, full of boys in bowler hats too big for them; and Agnes had been
superintending the numbering of the said hats, and the placing of them
in cupboards, since they would not be wanted till the end of the term.
Each boy had, or should have had, a bag, so that he need not unpack his
box till the morrow, One boy had only a brown-paper parcel, tied with
hairy string, and Rickie heard the firm pleasant voice say, "But you'll
bring a bag next term," and the submissive, "Yes, Mrs. Elliot," of the
reply. In the passage he ran against the head boy, who was alarmingly
like an undergraduate. They looked at each other suspiciously, and
parted. Two minutes later he ran into another boy, and then into
another, and began to wonder whether they were doing it on purpose, and
if so, whether he ought to mind. As the day wore on, the noises grew
louder-trampings of feet, breakdowns, jolly little squawks--and
the cubicles were assigned, and the bags unpacked, and the bathing
arrangements posted up, and Herbert kept on saying, "All this is
informal--all this is informal. We shall meet the house at eight
fifteen."

And so, at eight ten, Rickie put on his cap and gown,--hitherto symbols
of pupilage, now to be symbols of dignity,--the very cap and gown that
Widdrington had so recently hung upon the college fountain. Herbert,
similarly attired, was waiting for him in their private dining-room,
where also sat Agnes, ravenously devouring scrambled eggs. "But you'll
wear your hoods," she cried. Herbert considered, and them said she was
quite right. He fetched his white silk, Rickie the fragment of rabbit's
wool that marks the degree of B.A. Thus attired, they proceeded
through the baize door. They were a little late, and the boys, who
were marshalled in the preparation room, were getting uproarious. One,
forgetting how far his voice carried, shouted, "Cave! Here comes the
Whelk." And another young devil yelled, "The Whelk's brought a pet with
him!"

"You mustn't mind," said Herbert kindly. "We masters make a point of
never minding nicknames--unless, of course, they are applied openly, in
which case a thousand lines is not too much." Rickie assented, and they
entered the preparation room just as the prefects had established order.

Here Herbert took his seat on a high-legged chair, while Rickie, like a
queen-consort, sat near him on a chair with somewhat shorter legs. Each
chair had a desk attached to it, and Herbert flung up the lid of his,
and then looked round the preparation room with a quick frown, as if
the contents had surprised him. So impressed was Rickie that he peeped
sideways, but could only see a little blotting-paper in the desk. Then
he noticed that the boys were impressed too. Their chatter ceased. They
attended.

The room was almost full. The prefects, instead of lolling disdainfully
in the back row, were ranged like councillors beneath the central
throne. This was an innovation of Mr. Pembroke's. Carruthers, the head
boy, sat in the middle, with his arm round Lloyd. It was Lloyd who had
made the matron too bright: he nearly lost his colours in consequence.
These two were grown up. Beside them sat Tewson, a saintly child in
the spectacles, who had risen to this height by reason of his immense
learning. He, like the others, was a school prefect. The house prefects,
an inferior brand, were beyond, and behind came the indistinguishable
many. The faces all looked alike as yet--except the face of one boy, who
was inclined to cry.

"School," said Mr. Pembroke, slowly closing the lid of the
desk,--"school is the world in miniature." Then he paused, as a man well
may who has made such a remark. It is not, however, the intention of
this work to quote an opening address. Rickie, at all events, refused to
be critical: Herbert's experience was far greater than his, and he must
take his tone from him. Nor could any one criticize the exhortations
to be patriotic, athletic, learned, and religious, that flowed like
a four-part fugue from Mr. Pembroke's mouth. He was a practised
speaker--that is to say, he held his audience's attention. He told them
that this term, the second of his reign, was THE term for Dunwood House;
that it behooved every boy to labour during it for his house's honour,
and, through the house, for the honour of the school. Taking a wider
range, he spoke of England, or rather of Great Britain, and of her
continental foes. Portraits of empire-builders hung on the wall, and he
pointed to them. He quoted imperial poets. He showed how patriotism had
broadened since the days of Shakespeare, who, for all his genius, could
only write of his country as--

"This fortress built by nature for herself Against infection and the
hand of war, This hazy breed of men, this little world, This precious
stone set in the silver sea."

And it seemed that only a short ladder lay between the preparation room
and the Anglo-Saxon hegemony of the globe. Then he paused, and in the
silence came "sob, sob, sob," from a little boy, who was regretting a
villa in Guildford and his mother's half acre of garden.

The proceeding terminated with the broader patriotism of the school
anthem, recently composed by the organist. Words and tune were still a
matter for taste, and it was Mr. Pembroke (and he only because he had
the music) who gave the right intonation to

     "Perish each laggard!
     Let it not be said
     That Sawston such within her walls hath bred."

"Come, come," he said pleasantly, as they ended with harmonies in the
style of Richard Strauss. "This will never do. We must grapple with the
anthem this term--you're as tuneful as--as day-boys!"

Hearty laughter, and then the whole house filed past them and shook
hands.

"But how did it impress you?" Herbert asked, as soon as they were back
in their own part. Agnes had provided them with a tray of food: the
meals were still anyhow, and she had to fly at once to see after the
boys.

"I liked the look of them."

"I meant rather, how did the house impress you as a house?"

"I don't think I thought," said Rickie rather nervously. "It is not easy
to catch the spirit of a thing at once. I only saw a roomful of boys."

"My dear Rickie, don't be so diffident. You are perfectly right. You
only did see a roomful of boys. As yet there's nothing else to see. The
house, like the school, lacks tradition. Look at Winchester. Look at
the traditional rivalry between Eton and Harrow. Tradition is of
incalculable importance, if a school is to have any status. Why should
Sawston be without?"

"Yes. Tradition is of incalculable value. And I envy those schools that
have a natural connection with the past. Of course Sawston has a past,
though not of the kind that you quite want. The sons of poor tradesmen
went to it at first. So wouldn't its traditions be more likely to linger
in the Commercial School?" he concluded nervously.

"You have a great deal to learn--a very great deal. Listen to me. Why
has Sawston no traditions?" His round, rather foolish, face assumed the
expression of a conspirator. Bending over the mutton, he whispered, "I
can tell you why. Owing to the day-boys. How can traditions flourish in
such soil? Picture the day-boy's life--at home for meals, at home for
preparation, at home for sleep, running home with every fancied wrong.
There are day-boys in your class, and, mark my words, they will give you
ten times as much trouble as the boarders, late, slovenly, stopping away
at the slightest pretext. And then the letters from the parents! 'Why
has my boy not been moved this term?' 'Why has my boy been moved this
term?' 'I am a dissenter, and do not wish my boy to subscribe to the
school mission.' 'Can you let my boy off early to water the garden?'
Remember that I have been a day-boy house-master, and tried to infuse
some esprit de corps into them. It is practically impossible. They come
as units, and units they remain. Worse. They infect the boarders. Their
pestilential, critical, discontented attitude is spreading over the
school. If I had my own way--"

He stopped somewhat abruptly.

"Was that why you laughed at their singing?"

"Not at all. Not at all. It is not my habit to set one section of the
school against the other."

After a little they went the rounds. The boys were in bed now.
"Good-night!" called Herbert, standing in the corridor of the cubicles,
and from behind each of the green curtains came the sound of a voice
replying, "Good-night, sir!" "Good-night," he observed into each
dormitory.

Then he went to the switch in the passage and plunged the whole house
into darkness. Rickie lingered behind him, strangely impressed. In the
morning those boys had been scattered over England, leading their own
lives. Now, for three months, they must change everything--see new
faces, accept new ideals. They, like himself, must enter a beneficent
machine, and learn the value of esprit de corps. Good luck attend
them--good luck and a happy release. For his heart would have them
not in these cubicles and dormitories, but each in his own dear home,
amongst faces and things that he knew.

Next morning, after chapel, he made the acquaintance of his class.
Towards that he felt very differently. Esprit de corps was not expected
of it. It was simply two dozen boys who were gathered together for the
purpose of learning Latin. His duties and difficulties would not lie
here. He was not required to provide it with an atmosphere. The scheme
of work was already mapped out, and he started gaily upon familiar
words--

"Pan, ovium custos, tua si tibi Maenala curae Adsis, O Tegaee, favens."

"Do you think that beautiful?" he asked, and received the honest answer,
"No, sir; I don't think I do." He met Herbert in high spirits in the
quadrangle during the interval. But Herbert thought his enthusiasm
rather amateurish, and cautioned him.

"You must take care they don't get out of hand. I approve of a lively
teacher, but discipline must be established first."

"I felt myself a learner, not a teacher. If I'm wrong over a point, or
don't know, I mean to tell them at once." Herbert shook his head.

"It's different if I was really a scholar. But I can't pose as one, can
I? I know much more than the boys, but I know very little. Surely the
honest thing is to be myself to them. Let them accept or refuse me as
that. That's the only attitude we shall any of us profit by in the end."

Mr. Pembroke was silent. Then he observed, "There is, as you say, a
higher attitude and a lower attitude. Yet here, as so often, cannot we
find a golden mean between them?"

"What's that?" said a dreamy voice. They turned and saw a tall,
spectacled man, who greeted the newcomer kindly, and took hold of his
arm. "What's that about the golden mean?"

"Mr. Jackson--Mr. Elliot: Mr. Elliot--Mr. Jackson," said Herbert, who
did not seem quite pleased. "Rickie, have you a moment to spare me?"

But the humanist spoke to the young man about the golden mean and
the pinchbeck mean, adding, "You know the Greeks aren't broad church
clergymen. They really aren't, in spite of much conflicting evidence.
Boys will regard Sophocles as a kind of enlightened bishop, and
something tells me that they are wrong."

"Mr. Jackson is a classical enthusiast," said Herbert. "He makes the
past live. I want to talk to you about the humdrum present."

"And I am warning him against the humdrum past. That's another point,
Mr. Elliot. Impress on your class that many Greeks and most Romans were
frightfully stupid, and if they disbelieve you, read Ctesiphon with
them, or Valerius Flaccus. Whatever is that noise?"

"It comes from your class-room, I think," snapped the other master.

"So it does. Ah, yes. I expect they are putting your little Tewson into
the waste-paper basket."

"I always lock my class-room in the interval--"

"Yes?"

"--and carry the key in my pocket."

"Ah. But, Mr. Elliot, I am a cousin of Widdrington's. He wrote to me
about you. I am so glad. Will you, first of all, come to supper next
Sunday?"

"I am afraid," put in Herbert, "that we poor housemasters must deny
ourselves festivities in term time."

"But mayn't he come once, just once?"

"May, my dear Jackson! My brother-in-law is not a baby. He decides for
himself."

Rickie naturally refused. As soon as they were out of hearing, Herbert
said, "This is a little unfortunate. Who is Mr. Widdrington?"

"I knew him at Cambridge."

"Let me explain how we stand," he continued, after a pause.

"Jackson is the worst of the reactionaries here, while I--why should I
conceal it?--have thrown in my lot with the party of progress. You will
see how we suffer from him at the masters' meetings. He has no talent
for organization, and yet he is always inflicting his ideas on others.
It was like his impertinence to dictate to you what authors you should
read, and meanwhile the sixth-form room like a bear-garden, and a school
prefect being put into the waste-paper basket. My good Rickie, there's
nothing to smile at. How is the school to go on with a man like that?
It would be a case of 'quick march,' if it was not for his brilliant
intellect. That's why I say it's a little unfortunate. You will have
very little in common, you and he."

Rickie did not answer. He was very fond of Widdrington, who was a
quaint, sensitive person. And he could not help being attracted by
Mr. Jackson, whose welcome contrasted pleasantly with the official
breeziness of his other colleagues. He wondered, too, whether it is so
very reactionary to contemplate the antique.

"It is true that I vote Conservative," pursued Mr. Pembroke, apparently
confronting some objector. "But why? Because the Conservatives, rather
than the Liberals, stand for progress. One must not be misled by
catch-words."

"Didn't you want to ask me something?"

"Ah, yes. You found a boy in your form called Varden?"

"Varden? Yes; there is."

"Drop on him heavily. He has broken the statutes of the school. He is
attending as a day-boy. The statutes provide that a boy must reside with
his parents or guardians. He does neither. It must be stopped. You must
tell the headmaster."

"Where does the boy live?"

"At a certain Mrs. Orr's, who has no connection with the school of any
kind. It must be stopped. He must either enter a boarding-house or go."

"But why should I tell?" said Rickie. He remembered the boy, an
unattractive person with protruding ears, "It is the business of his
house-master."

"House-master--exactly. Here we come back again. Who is now the
day-boys' house-master? Jackson once again--as if anything was Jackson's
business! I handed the house back last term in a most flourishing
condition. It has already gone to rack and ruin for the second time. To
return to Varden. I have unearthed a put-up job. Mrs. Jackson and Mrs.
Orr are friends. Do you see? It all works round."

"I see. It does--or might."

"The headmaster will never sanction it when it's put to him plainly."

"But why should I put it?" said Rickie, twisting the ribbons of his gown
round his fingers.

"Because you're the boy's form-master."

"Is that a reason?"

"Of course it is."

"I only wondered whether--" He did not like to say that he wondered
whether he need do it his first morning.

"By some means or other you must find out--of course you know already,
but you must find out from the boy. I know--I have it! Where's his
health certificate?"

"He had forgotten it."

"Just like them. Well, when he brings it, it will be signed by Mrs. Orr,
and you must look at it and say, 'Orr--Orr--Mrs. Orr?' or something to
that effect, and then the whole thing will come naturally out."

The bell rang, and they went in for the hour of school that concluded
the morning. Varden brought his health certificate--a pompous document
asserting that he had not suffered from roseola or kindred ailments in
the holidays--and for a long time Rickie sat with it before him,
spread open upon his desk. He did not quite like the job. It suggested
intrigue, and he had come to Sawston not to intrigue but to labour.
Doubtless Herbert was right, and Mr. Jackson and Mrs. Orr were wrong.
But why could they not have it out among themselves? Then he thought,
"I am a coward, and that's why I'm raising these objections," called the
boy up to him, and it did all come out naturally, more or less. Hitherto
Varden had lived with his mother; but she had left Sawston at Christmas,
and now he would live with Mrs. Orr. "Mr. Jackson, sir, said it would be
all right."

"Yes, yes," said Rickie; "quite so." He remembered Herbert's dictum:
"Masters must present a united front. If they do not--the deluge." He
sent the boy back to his seat, and after school took the compromising
health certificate to the headmaster. The headmaster was at that time
easily excited by a breach of the constitution. "Parents or guardians,"
he reputed--"parents or guardians," and flew with those words on his
lips to Mr. Jackson. To say that Rickie was a cat's-paw is to put it too
strongly. Herbert was strictly honourable, and never pushed him into an
illegal or really dangerous position; but there is no doubt that on
this and on many other occasions he had to do things that he would not
otherwise have done. There was always some diplomatic corner that had
to be turned, always something that he had to say or not to say. As the
term wore on he lost his independence--almost without knowing it. He had
much to learn about boys, and he learnt not by direct observation--for
which he believed he was unfitted--but by sedulous imitation of the more
experienced masters. Originally he had intended to be friends with his
pupils, and Mr. Pembroke commended the intention highly; but you cannot
be friends either with boy or man unless you give yourself away in
the process, and Mr. Pembroke did not commend this. He, for "personal
intercourse," substituted the safer "personal influence," and gave his
junior hints on the setting of kindly traps, in which the boy does give
himself away and reveals his shy delicate thoughts, while the master,
intact, commends or corrects them. Originally Rickie had meant to help
boys in the anxieties that they undergo when changing into men: at
Cambridge he had numbered this among life's duties. But here is a
subject in which we must inevitably speak as one human being to another,
not as one who has authority or the shadow of authority, and for this
reason the elder school-master could suggest nothing but a few formulae.
Formulae, like kindly traps, were not in Rickie's line, so he abandoned
these subjects altogether and confined himself to working hard at what
was easy. In the house he did as Herbert did, and referred all doubtful
subjects to him. In his form, oddly enough, he became a martinet. It
is so much simpler to be severe. He grasped the school regulations,
and insisted on prompt obedience to them. He adopted the doctrine of
collective responsibility. When one boy was late, he punished the whole
form. "I can't help it," he would say, as if he was a power of nature.
As a teacher he was rather dull. He curbed his own enthusiasms, finding
that they distracted his attention, and that while he throbbed to the
music of Virgil the boys in the back row were getting unruly. But on the
whole he liked his form work: he knew why he was there, and Herbert did
not overshadow him so completely.

What was amiss with Herbert? He had known that something was amiss,
and had entered into partnership with open eyes. The man was kind and
unselfish; more than that he was truly charitable, and it was a real
pleasure to him to give--pleasure to others. Certainly he might talk too
much about it afterwards; but it was the doing, not the talking, that he
really valued, and benefactors of this sort are not too common. He was,
moreover, diligent and conscientious: his heart was in his work, and
his adherence to the Church of England no mere matter of form. He was
capable of affection: he was usually courteous and tolerant. Then what
was amiss? Why, in spite of all these qualities, should Rickie feel that
there was something wrong with him--nay, that he was wrong as a whole,
and that if the Spirit of Humanity should ever hold a judgment he would
assuredly be classed among the goats? The answer at first sight appeared
a graceless one--it was that Herbert was stupid. Not stupid in the
ordinary sense--he had a business-like brain, and acquired knowledge
easily--but stupid in the important sense: his whole life was coloured
by a contempt of the intellect. That he had a tolerable intellect of his
own was not the point: it is in what we value, not in what we have, that
the test of us resides. Now, Rickie's intellect was not remarkable. He
came to his worthier results rather by imagination and instinct than by
logic. An argument confused him, and he could with difficulty follow it
even on paper. But he saw in this no reason for satisfaction, and tried
to make such use of his brain as he could, just as a weak athlete might
lovingly exercise his body. Like a weak athlete, too, he loved to watch
the exploits, or rather the efforts, of others--their efforts not so
much to acquire knowledge as to dispel a little of the darkness by which
we and all our acquisitions are surrounded. Cambridge had taught him
this, and he knew, if for no other reason, that his time there had not
been in vain. And Herbert's contempt for such efforts revolted him. He
saw that for all his fine talk about a spiritual life he had but one
test for things--success: success for the body in this life or for the
soul in the life to come. And for this reason Humanity, and perhaps such
other tribunals as there may be, would assuredly reject him.



XVIII

Meanwhile he was a husband. Perhaps his union should have been
emphasized before. The crown of life had been attained, the vague
yearnings, the misread impulses, had found accomplishment at last. Never
again must he feel lonely, or as one who stands out of the broad highway
of the world and fears, like poor Shelley, to undertake the longest
journey. So he reasoned, and at first took the accomplishment for
granted. But as the term passed he knew that behind the yearning there
remained a yearning, behind the drawn veil a veil that he could not
draw. His wedding had been no mighty landmark: he would often wonder
whether such and such a speech or incident came after it or before.
Since that meeting in the Soho restaurant there had been so much to
do--clothes to buy, presents to thank for, a brief visit to a Training
College, a honeymoon as brief. In such a bustle, what spiritual union
could take place? Surely the dust would settle soon: in Italy, at
Easter, he might perceive the infinities of love. But love had shown him
its infinities already. Neither by marriage nor by any other device can
men insure themselves a vision; and Rickie's had been granted him three
years before, when he had seen his wife and a dead man clasped in each
other's arms. She was never to be so real to him again.

She ran about the house looking handsomer than ever. Her cheerful
voice gave orders to the servants. As he sat in the study correcting
compositions, she would dart in and give him a kiss. "Dear girl--" he
would murmur, with a glance at the rings on her hand. The tone of their
marriage life was soon set. It was to be a frank good-fellowship, and
before long he found it difficult to speak in a deeper key.

One evening he made the effort. There had been more beauty than was
usual at Sawston. The air was pure and quiet. Tomorrow the fog might
be here, but today one said, "It is like the country." Arm in arm they
strolled in the side-garden, stopping at times to notice the crocuses,
or to wonder when the daffodils would flower. Suddenly he tightened his
pressure, and said, "Darling, why don't you still wear ear-rings?"

"Ear-rings?" She laughed. "My taste has improved, perhaps."

So after all they never mentioned Gerald's name. But he hoped it was
still dear to her. He did not want her to forget the greatest moment in
her life. His love desired not ownership but confidence, and to a love
so pure it does not seem terrible to come second.

He valued emotion--not for itself, but because it is the only final path
to intimacy. She, ever robust and practical, always discouraged him.
She was not cold; she would willingly embrace him. But she hated being
upset, and would laugh or thrust him off when his voice grew serious.
In this she reminded him of his mother. But his mother--he had never
concealed it from himself--had glories to which his wife would never
attain: glories that had unfolded against a life of horror--a life even
more horrible than he had guessed. He thought of her often during these
earlier months. Did she bless his union, so different to her own? Did
she love his wife? He tried to speak of her to Agnes, but again she was
reluctant. And perhaps it was this aversion to acknowledge the dead,
whose images alone have immortality, that made her own image somewhat
transient, so that when he left her no mystic influence remained, and
only by an effort could he realize that God had united them forever.

They conversed and differed healthily upon other topics. A rifle corps
was to be formed: she hoped that the boys would have proper uniforms,
instead of shooting in their old clothes, as Mr. Jackson had suggested.
There was Tewson; could nothing be done about him? He would slink away
from the other prefects and go with boys of his own age. There was
Lloyd: he would not learn the school anthem, saying that it hurt his
throat. And above all there was Varden, who, to Rickie's bewilderment,
was now a member of Dunwood House.

"He had to go somewhere," said Agnes. "Lucky for his mother that we had
a vacancy."

"Yes--but when I meet Mrs. Orr--I can't help feeling ashamed."

"Oh, Mrs. Orr! Who cares for her? Her teeth are drawn. If she chooses
to insinuate that we planned it, let her. Hers was rank dishonesty. She
attempted to set up a boarding-house."

Mrs. Orr, who was quite rich, had attempted no such thing. She had taken
the boy out of charity, and without a thought of being unconstitutional.
But in had come this officious "Limpet" and upset the headmaster,
and she was scolded, and Mrs. Varden was scolded, and Mr. Jackson was
scolded, and the boy was scolded and placed with Mr. Pembroke, whom she
revered less than any man in the world. Naturally enough, she considered
it a further attempt of the authorities to snub the day-boys, for whose
advantage the school had been founded. She and Mrs. Jackson discussed
the subject at their tea-parties, and the latter lady was sure that
no good, no good of any kind, would come to Dunwood House from such
ill-gotten plunder.

"We say, 'Let them talk,'" persisted Rickie, "but I never did like
letting people talk. We are right and they are wrong, but I wish the
thing could have been done more quietly. The headmaster does get so
excited. He has given a gang of foolish people their opportunity. I
don't like being branded as the day-boy's foe, when I think how much I
would have given to be a day-boy myself. My father found me a nuisance,
and put me through the mill, and I can never forget it particularly the
evenings."

"There's very little bullying here," said Agnes.

"There was very little bullying at my school. There was simply the
atmosphere of unkindness, which no discipline can dispel. It's not what
people do to you, but what they mean, that hurts."

"I don't understand."

"Physical pain doesn't hurt--at least not what I call hurt--if a man
hits you by accident or play. But just a little tap, when you know it
comes from hatred, is too terrible. Boys do hate each other: I remember
it, and see it again. They can make strong isolated friendships, but of
general good-fellowship they haven't a notion."

"All I know is there's very little bullying here."

"You see, the notion of good-fellowship develops late: you can just see
its beginning here among the prefects: up at Cambridge it flourishes
amazingly. That's why I pity people who don't go up to Cambridge: not
because a University is smart, but because those are the magic years,
and--with luck--you see up there what you couldn't see before and mayn't
ever see again.

"Aren't these the magic years?" the lady demanded.

He laughed and hit at her. "I'm getting somewhat involved. But hear me,
O Agnes, for I am practical. I approve of our public schools. Long may
they, flourish. But I do not approve of the boarding-house system. It
isn't an inevitable adjunct--"

"Good gracious me!" she shrieked. "Have you gone mad?"

"Silence, madam. Don't betray me to Herbert, or I'll give us the sack.
But seriously, what is the good of, throwing boys so much together?
Isn't it building their lives on a wrong basis? They don't understand
each other. I wish they did, but they don't. They don't realize that
human beings are simply marvellous. When they do, the whole of life
changes, and you get the true thing. But don't pretend you've got it
before you have. Patriotism and esprit de corps are all very well, but
masters a little forget that they must grow from sentiment. They cannot
create one. Cannot-cannot--cannot. I never cared a straw for England
until I cared for Englishmen, and boys can't love the school when they
hate each other. Ladies and gentlemen, I will now conclude my address.
And most of it is copied out of Mr. Ansell."

The truth is, he was suddenly ashamed. He had been carried away on the
flood of his old emotions. Cambridge and all that it meant had stood
before him passionately clear, and beside it stood his mother and the
sweet family life which nurses up a boy until he can salute his equals.
He was ashamed, for he remembered his new resolution--to work without
criticizing, to throw himself vigorously into the machine, not to mind
if he was pinched now and then by the elaborate wheels.

"Mr. Ansell!" cried his wife, laughing somewhat shrilly. "Aha! Now I
understand. It's just the kind of thing poor Mr. Ansell would say. Well,
I'm brutal. I believe it does Varden good to have his ears pulled now
and then, and I don't care whether they pull them in play or not. Boys
ought to rough it, or they never grow up into men, and your mother would
have agreed with me. Oh yes; and you're all wrong about patriotism. It
can, can, create a sentiment."

She was unusually precise, and had followed his thoughts with an
attention that was also unusual. He wondered whether she was not right,
and regretted that she proceeded to say, "My dear boy, you mustn't talk
these heresies inside Dunwood House! You sound just like one of that
reactionary Jackson set, who want to fling the school back a hundred
years and have nothing but day-boys all dressed anyhow."

"The Jackson set have their points."

"You'd better join it."

"The Dunwood House set has its points." For Rickie suffered from the
Primal Curse, which is not--as the Authorized Version suggests--the
knowledge of good and evil, but the knowledge of good-and-evil.

"Then stick to the Dunwood House set."

"I do, and shall." Again he was ashamed. Why would he see the other
side of things? He rebuked his soul, not unsuccessfully, and then they
returned to the subject of Varden.

"I'm certain he suffers," said he, for she would do nothing but laugh.
"Each boy who passes pulls his ears--very funny, no doubt; but every day
they stick out more and get redder, and this afternoon, when he didn't
know he was being watched, he was holding his head and moaning. I hate
the look about his eyes."

"I hate the whole boy. Nasty weedy thing."

"Well, I'm a nasty weedy thing, if it comes to that."

"No, you aren't," she cried, kissing him. But he led her back to
the subject. Could nothing be suggested? He drew up some new
rules--alterations in the times of going to bed, and so on--the effect
of which would be to provide fewer opportunities for the pulling of
Varden's ears. The rules were submitted to Herbert, who sympathized
with weakliness more than did his sister, and gave them his careful
consideration. But unfortunately they collided with other rules, and
on a closer examination he found that they also ran contrary to the
fundamentals on which the government of Dunwood House was based. So
nothing was done. Agnes was rather pleased, and took to teasing her
husband about Varden. At last he asked her to stop. He felt uneasy about
the boy--almost superstitious. His first morning's work had brought
sixty pounds a year to their hotel.



XIX

They did not get to Italy at Easter. Herbert had the offer of some
private pupils, and needed Rickie's help. It seemed unreasonable
to leave England when money was to be made in it, so they went to
Ilfracombe instead. They spent three weeks among the natural advantages
and unnatural disadvantages of that resort. It was out of the season,
and they encamped in a huge hotel, which took them at a reduction. By a
disastrous chance the Jacksons were down there too, and a good deal of
constrained civility had to pass between the two families. Constrained
it was not in Mr. Jackson's case. At all times he was ready to talk, and
as long as they kept off the school it was pleasant enough. But he was
very indiscreet, and feminine tact had often to intervene. "Go away,
dear ladies," he would then observe. "You think you see life because you
see the chasms in it. Yet all the chasms are full of female skeletons."
The ladies smiled anxiously. To Rickie he was friendly and even
intimate. They had long talks on the deserted Capstone, while their
wives sat reading in the Winter Garden and Mr. Pembroke kept an eye upon
the tutored youths. "Once I had tutored youths," said Mr. Jackson,
"but I lost them all by letting them paddle with my nieces. It is so
impossible to remember what is proper." And sooner or later their talk
gravitated towards his central passion--the Fragments of Sophocles. Some
day ("never," said Herbert) he would edit them. At present they were
merely in his blood. With the zeal of a scholar and the imagination of
a poet he reconstructed lost dramas--Niobe, Phaedra, Philoctetes against
Troy, whose names, but for an accident, would have thrilled the world.
"Is it worth it?" he cried. "Had we better be planting potatoes?" And
then: "We had; but this is the second best."

Agnes did not approve of these colloquies. Mr. Jackson was not a
buffoon, but he behaved like one, which is what matters; and from the
Winter Garden she could see people laughing at him, and at her husband,
who got excited too. She hinted once or twice, but no notice was taken,
and at last she said rather sharply, "Now, you're not to, Rickie. I
won't have it."

"He's a type that suits me. He knows people I know, or would like to
have known. He was a friend of Tony Failing's. It is so hard to realize
that a man connected with one was great. Uncle Tony seems to have been.
He loved poetry and music and pictures, and everything tempted him to
live in a kind of cultured paradise, with the door shut upon squalor.
But to have more decent people in the world--he sacrificed everything
to that. He would have 'smashed the whole beauty-shop' if it would help
him. I really couldn't go as far as that. I don't think one need go as
far--pictures might have to be smashed, but not music or poetry; surely
they help--and Jackson doesn't think so either."

"Well, I won't have it, and that's enough." She laughed, for her voice
had a little been that of the professional scold. "You see we must hang
together. He's in the reactionary camp."

"He doesn't know it. He doesn't know that he is in any camp at all."

"His wife is, which comes to the same."

"Still, it's the holidays--" He and Mr. Jackson had drifted apart in
the term, chiefly owing to the affair of Varden. "We were to have the
holidays to ourselves, you know." And following some line of thought,
he continued, "He cheers one up. He does believe in poetry. Smart,
sentimental books do seem absolutely absurd to him, and gods and fairies
far nearer to reality. He tries to express all modern life in the terms
of Greek mythology, because the Greeks looked very straight at things,
and Demeter or Aphrodite are thinner veils than 'The survival of the
fittest', or 'A marriage has been arranged,' and other draperies of
modern journalese."

"And do you know what that means?"

"It means that poetry, not prose, lies at the core."

"No. I can tell you what it means--balder-dash."

His mouth fell. She was sweeping away the cobwebs with a vengeance. "I
hope you're wrong," he replied, "for those are the lines on which I've
been writing, however badly, for the last two years."

"But you write stories, not poems."

He looked at his watch. "Lessons again. One never has a moment's peace."

"Poor Rickie. You shall have a real holiday in the summer." And she
called after him to say, "Remember, dear, about Mr. Jackson. Don't go
talking so much to him."

Rather arbitrary. Her tone had been a little arbitrary of late. But what
did it matter? Mr. Jackson was not a friend, and he must risk the chance
of offending Widdrington. After the lesson he wrote to Ansell, whom he
had not seen since June, asking him to come down to Ilfracombe, if only
for a day. On reading the letter over, its tone displeased him. It was
quite pathetic: it sounded like a cry from prison. "I can't send him
such nonsense," he thought, and wrote again. But phrase it as he would
the letter always suggested that he was unhappy. "What's wrong?" he
wondered. "I could write anything I wanted to him once." So he scrawled
"Come!" on a post-card. But even this seemed too serious. The post-card
followed the letters, and Agnes found them all in the waste-paper
basket.

Then she said, "I've been thinking--oughtn't you to ask Mr. Ansell over?
A breath of sea air would do the poor thing good."

There was no difficulty now. He wrote at once, "My dear Stewart, We both
so much wish you could come over." But the invitation was refused. A
little uneasy he wrote again, using the dialect of their past intimacy.
The effect of this letter was not pathetic but jaunty, and he felt
a keen regret as soon as it slipped into the box. It was a relief to
receive no reply.

He brooded a good deal over this painful yet intangible episode. Was
the pain all of his own creating? or had it been produced by something
external? And he got the answer that brooding always gives--it was both.
He was morbid, and had been so since his visit to Cadover--quicker to
register discomfort than joy. But, none the less, Ansell was definitely
brutal, and Agnes definitely jealous. Brutality he could understand,
alien as it was to himself. Jealousy, equally alien, was a harder
matter. Let husband and wife be as sun and moon, or as moon and sun.
Shall they therefore not give greeting to the stars? He was willing to
grant that the love that inspired her might be higher than his own. Yet
did it not exclude them both from much that is gracious? That dream of
his when he rode on the Wiltshire expanses--a curious dream: the lark
silent, the earth dissolving. And he awoke from it into a valley full of
men.

She was jealous in many ways--sometimes in an open humorous fashion,
sometimes more subtly, never content till "we" had extended our
patronage, and, if possible, our pity. She began to patronize and pity
Ansell, and most sincerely trusted that he would get his fellowship.
Otherwise what was the poor fellow to do? Ridiculous as it may seem, she
was even jealous of Nature. One day her husband escaped from Ilfracombe
to Morthoe, and came back ecstatic over its fangs of slate, piercing an
oily sea. "Sounds like an hippopotamus," she said peevishly. And when
they returned to Sawston through the Virgilian counties, she disliked
him looking out of the windows, for all the world as if Nature was some
dangerous woman.

He resumed his duties with a feeling that he had never left them. Again
he confronted the assembled house. This term was again the term; school
still the world in miniature. The music of the four-part fugue entered
into him more deeply, and he began to hum its little phrases. The same
routine, the same diplomacies, the same old sense of only half knowing
boys or men--he returned to it all: and all that changed was the cloud
of unreality, which ever brooded a little more densely than before. He
spoke to his wife about this, he spoke to her about everything, and she
was alarmed, and wanted him to see a doctor. But he explained that it
was nothing of any practical importance, nothing that interfered with
his work or his appetite, nothing more than a feeling that the cow was
not really there. She laughed, and "how is the cow today?" soon passed
into a domestic joke.



XX

Ansell was in his favourite haunt--the reading-room of the British
Museum. In that book-encircled space he always could find peace. He
loved to see the volumes rising tier above tier into the misty dome. He
loved the chairs that glide so noiselessly, and the radiating desks,
and the central area, where the catalogue shelves curve, round the
superintendent's throne. There he knew that his life was not ignoble. It
was worth while to grow old and dusty seeking for truth though truth is
unattainable, restating questions that have been stated at the beginning
of the world. Failure would await him, but not disillusionment. It was
worth while reading books, and writing a book or two which few would
read, and no one, perhaps, endorse. He was not a hero, and he knew it.
His father and sister, by their steady goodness, had made this life
possible. But, all the same, it was not the life of a spoilt child.

In the next chair to him sat Widdrington, engaged in his historical
research. His desk was edged with enormous volumes, and every few
moments an assistant brought him more. They rose like a wall against
Ansell. Towards the end of the morning a gap was made, and through it
they held the following conversation.

"I've been stopping with my cousin at Sawston."

"M'm."

"It was quite exciting. The air rang with battle. About two-thirds of
the masters have lost their heads, and are trying to produce a gimcrack
copy of Eton. Last term, you know, with a great deal of puffing and
blowing, they fixed the numbers of the school. This term they want to
create a new boarding-house."

"They are very welcome."

"But the more boarding-houses they create, the less room they leave for
day-boys. The local mothers are frantic, and so is my queer cousin.
I never knew him so excited over sub-Hellenic things. There was an
indignation meeting at his house. He is supposed to look after the
day-boys' interests, but no one thought he would--least of all the
people who gave him the post. The speeches were most eloquent.
They argued that the school was founded for day-boys, and that it's
intolerable to handicap them. One poor lady cried, 'Here's my Harold in
the school, and my Toddie coming on. As likely as not I shall be told
there is no vacancy for him. Then what am I to do? If I go, what's to
become of Harold; and if I stop, what's to become of Toddie?' I must
say I was touched. Family life is more real than national life--at least
I've ordered all these books to prove it is--and I fancy that the bust
of Euripides agreed with me, and was sorry for the hot-faced mothers.
Jackson will do what he can. He didn't quite like to state the
naked truth-which is, that boardinghouses pay. He explained it to me
afterwards: they are the only, future open to a stupid master. It's easy
enough to be a beak when you're young and athletic, and can offer the
latest University smattering. The difficulty is to keep your place when
you get old and stiff, and younger smatterers are pushing up behind
you. Crawl into a boarding-house and you're safe. A master's life is
frightfully tragic. Jackson's fairly right himself, because he has got
a first-class intellect. But I met a poor brute who was hired as an
athlete. He has missed his shot at a boarding-house, and there's nothing
in the world for him to do but to trundle down the hill."

Ansell yawned.

"I saw Rickie too. Once I dined there."

Another yawn.

"My cousin thinks Mrs. Elliot one of the most horrible women he has
ever seen. He calls her 'Medusa in Arcady.' She's so pleasant, too. But
certainly it was a very stony meal."

"What kind of stoniness"

"No one stopped talking for a moment."

"That's the real kind," said Ansell moodily. "The only kind."

"Well, I," he continued, "am inclined to compare her to an electric
light. Click! she's on. Click! she's off. No waste. No flicker."

"I wish she'd fuse."

"She'll never fuse--unless anything was to happen at the main."

"What do you mean by the main?" said Ansell, who always pursued a
metaphor relentlessly.

Widdrington did not know what he meant, and suggested that Ansell should
visit Sawston to see whether one could know.

"It is no good me going. I should not find Mrs. Elliot: she has no real
existence."

"Rickie has."

"I very much doubt it. I had two letters from Ilfracombe last April,
and I very much doubt that the man who wrote them can exist." Bending
downwards he began to adorn the manuscript of his dissertation with a
square, and inside that a circle, and inside that another square. It was
his second dissertation: the first had failed.

"I think he exists: he is so unhappy."

Ansell nodded. "How did you know he was unhappy?"

"Because he was always talking." After a pause he added, "What clever
young men we are!"

"Aren't we? I expect we shall get asked in marriage soon. I say,
Widdrington, shall we--?"

"Accept? Of course. It is not young manly to say no."

"I meant shall we ever do a more tremendous thing,--fuse Mrs. Elliot."

"No," said Widdrington promptly. "We shall never do that in all our
lives." He added, "I think you might go down to Sawston, though."

"I have already refused or ignored three invitations."

"So I gathered."

"What's the good of it?" said Ansell through his teeth. "I will not put
up with little things. I would rather be rude than to listen to twaddle
from a man I've known.

"You might go down to Sawston, just for a night, to see him."

"I saw him last month--at least, so Tilliard informs me. He says that we
all three lunched together, that Rickie paid, and that the conversation
was most interesting."

"Well, I contend that he does exist, and that if you go--oh, I can't be
clever any longer. You really must go, man. I'm certain he's miserable
and lonely. Dunwood House reeks of commerce and snobbery and all the
things he hated most. He doesn't do anything. He doesn't make any
friends. He is so odd, too. In this day-boy row that has just started
he's gone for my cousin. Would you believe it? Quite spitefully. It made
quite a difficulty when I wanted to dine. It isn't like him either the
sentiments or the behaviour. I'm sure he's not himself. Pembroke used to
look after the day-boys, and so he can't very well take the lead against
them, and perhaps Rickie's doing his dirty work--and has overdone it, as
decent people generally do. He's even altering to talk to. Yet he's not
been married a year. Pembroke and that wife simply run him. I don't see
why they should, and no more do you; and that's why I want you to go to
Sawston, if only for one night."

Ansell shook his head, and looked up at the dome as other men look at
the sky. In it the great arc lamps sputtered and flared, for the month
was again November. Then he lowered his eyes from the cold violet
radiance to the books.

"No, Widdrington; no. We don't go to see people because they are happy
or unhappy. We go when we can talk to them. I cannot talk to Rickie,
therefore I will not waste my time at Sawston."

"I think you're right," said Widdrington softly. "But we are bloodless
brutes. I wonder whether-If we were different people--something might be
done to save him. That is the curse of being a little intellectual. You
and our sort have always seen too clearly. We stand aside--and meanwhile
he turns into stone. Two philosophic youths repining in the British
Museum! What have we done? What shall we ever do? Just drift and
criticize, while people who know what they want snatch it away from us
and laugh."

"Perhaps you are that sort. I'm not. When the moment comes I shall hit
out like any ploughboy. Don't believe those lies about intellectual
people. They're only written to soothe the majority. Do you suppose,
with the world as it is, that it's an easy matter to keep quiet? Do
you suppose that I didn't want to rescue him from that ghastly woman?
Action! Nothing's easier than action; as fools testify. But I want to
act rightly."

"The superintendent is looking at us. I must get back to my work."

"You think this all nonsense," said Ansell, detaining him. "Please
remember that if I do act, you are bound to help me."

Widdrington looked a little grave. He was no anarchist. A few plaintive
cries against Mrs. Elliot were all that he prepared to emit.

"There's no mystery," continued Ansell. "I haven't the shadow of a plan
in my head. I know not only Rickie but the whole of his history: you
remember the day near Madingley. Nothing in either helps me: I'm just
watching."

"But what for?"

"For the Spirit of Life."

Widdrington was surprised. It was a phrase unknown to their philosophy.
They had trespassed into poetry.

"You can't fight Medusa with anything else. If you ask me what the
Spirit of Life is, or to what it is attached, I can't tell you. I only
tell you, watch for it. Myself I've found it in books. Some people find
it out of doors or in each other. Never mind. It's the same spirit, and
I trust myself to know it anywhere, and to use it rightly."

But at this point the superintendent sent a message.

Widdrington then suggested a stroll in the galleries. It was foggy: they
needed fresh air. He loved and admired his friend, but today he could
not grasp him. The world as Ansell saw it seemed such a fantastic place,
governed by brand-new laws. What more could one do than to see Rickie
as often as possible, to invite his confidence, to offer him spiritual
support? And Mrs. Elliot--what power could "fuse" a respectable woman?

Ansell consented to the stroll, but, as usual, only breathed depression.
The comfort of books deserted him among those marble goddesses and gods.
The eye of an artist finds pleasure in texture and poise, but he could
only think of the vanished incense and deserted temples beside an
unfurrowed sea.

"Let us go," he said. "I do not like carved stones."

"You are too particular," said Widdrington. "You are always expecting
to meet living people. One never does. I am content with the Parthenon
frieze." And he moved along a few yards of it, while Ansell followed,
conscious only of its pathos.

"There's Tilliard," he observed. "Shall we kill him?"

"Please," said Widdrington, and as he spoke Tilliard joined them. He
brought them news. That morning he had heard from Rickie: Mrs. Elliot
was expecting a child.

"A child?" said Ansell, suddenly bewildered.

"Oh, I forgot," interposed Widdrington. "My cousin did tell me."

"You forgot! Well, after all, I forgot that it might be, We are indeed
young men." He leant against the pedestal of Ilissus and remembered
their talk about the Spirit of Life. In his ignorance of what a child
means he wondered whether the opportunity he sought lay here.

"I am very glad," said Tilliard, not without intention. "A child will
draw them even closer together. I like to see young people wrapped up in
their child."

"I suppose I must be getting back to my dissertation," said Ansell.
He left the Parthenon to pass by the monuments of our more reticent
beliefs--the temple of the Ephesian Artemis, the statue of the Cnidian
Demeter. Honest, he knew that here were powers he could not cope with,
nor, as yet, understand.


XXI

The mists that had gathered round Rickie seemed to be breaking. He had
found light neither in work for which he was unfitted nor in a woman who
had ceased to respect him, and whom he was ceasing to love. Though he
called himself fickle and took all the blame of their marriage on his
own shoulders, there remained in Agnes certain terrible faults of heart
and head, and no self-reproach would diminish them. The glamour of
wedlock had faded; indeed, he saw now that it had faded even before
wedlock, and that during the final months he had shut his eyes and
pretended it was still there. But now the mists were breaking.

That November the supreme event approached. He saw it with Nature's
eyes. It dawned on him, as on Ansell, that personal love and marriage
only cover one side of the shield, and that on the other is graven the
epic of birth. In the midst of lessons he would grow dreamy, as one who
spies a new symbol for the universe, a fresh circle within the square.
Within the square shall be a circle, within the circle another square,
until the visual eye is baffled. Here is meaning of a kind. His mother
had forgotten herself in him. He would forget himself in his son.

He was at his duties when the news arrived--taking preparation. Boys are
marvellous creatures. Perhaps they will sink below the brutes; perhaps
they will attain to a woman's tenderness. Though they despised Rickie,
and had suffered under Agnes's meanness, their one thought this term was
to be gentle and to give no trouble.

"Rickie--one moment--"

His face grew ashen. He followed Herbert into the passage, closing
the door of the preparation room behind him. "Oh, is she safe?" he
whispered.

"Yes, yes," said Herbert; but there sounded in his answer a sombre
hostile note.

"Our boy?"

"Girl--a girl, dear Rickie; a little daughter. She--she is in many ways
a healthy child. She will live--oh yes." A flash of horror passed over
his face. He hurried into the preparation room, lifted the lid of his
desk, glanced mechanically at the boys, and came out again.

Mrs. Lewin appeared through the door that led into their own part of the
house.

"Both going on well!" she cried; but her voice also was grave,
exasperated.

"What is it?" he gasped. "It's something you daren't tell me."

"Only this"--stuttered Herbert. "You mustn't mind when you see--she's
lame."

Mrs. Lewin disappeared. "Lame! but not as lame as I am?"

"Oh, my dear boy, worse. Don't--oh, be a man in this. Come away from the
preparation room. Remember she'll live--in many ways healthy--only just
this one defect."

The horror of that week never passed away from him. To the end of his
life he remembered the excuses--the consolations that the child would
live; suffered very little, if at all; would walk with crutches; would
certainly live. God was more merciful. A window was opened too wide on a
draughty day--after a short, painless illness his daughter died. But
the lesson he had learnt so glibly at Cambridge should be heeded now; no
child should ever be born to him again.



XXII

That same term there took place at Dunwood House another event. With
their private tragedy it seemed to have no connection; but in time
Rickie perceived it as a bitter comment. Its developments were
unforeseen and lasting. It was perhaps the most terrible thing he had to
bear.

Varden had now been a boarder for ten months. His health had broken in
the previous term,--partly, it is to be feared, as the result of the
indifferent food--and during the summer holidays he was attacked by a
series of agonizing earaches. His mother, a feeble person, wished to
keep him at home, but Herbert dissuaded her. Soon after the death of the
child there arose at Dunwood House one of those waves of hostility of
which no boy knows the origin nor any master can calculate the course.
Varden had never been popular--there was no reason why he should be--but
he had never been seriously bullied hitherto. One evening nearly the
whole house set on him. The prefects absented themselves, the bigger
boys stood round and the lesser boys, to whom power was delegated, flung
him down, and rubbed his face under the desks, and wrenched at his ears.
The noise penetrated the baize doors, and Herbert swept through and
punished the whole house, including Varden, whom it would not do to
leave out. The poor man was horrified. He approved of a little healthy
roughness, but this was pure brutalization. What had come over his boys?
Were they not gentlemen's sons? He would not admit that if you herd
together human beings before they can understand each other the great
god Pan is angry, and will in the end evade your regulations and drive
them mad. That night the victim was screaming with pain, and the doctor
next day spoke of an operation. The suspense lasted a whole week.
Comment was made in the local papers, and the reputation not only of the
house but of the school was imperilled. "If only I had known," repeated
Herbert--"if only I had known I would have arranged it all differently.
He should have had a cubicle." The boy did not die, but he left Sawston,
never to return.

The day before his departure Rickie sat with him some time, and tried to
talk in a way that was not pedantic. In his own sorrow, which he could
share with no one, least of all with his wife, he was still alive to the
sorrows of others. He still fought against apathy, though he was losing
the battle.

"Don't lose heart," he told him. "The world isn't all going to be like
this. There are temptations and trials, of course, but nothing at all of
the kind you have had here."

"But school is the world in miniature, is it not, sir?" asked the
boy, hoping to please one master by echoing what had been told him by
another. He was always on the lookout for sympathy--: it was one of the
things that had contributed to his downfall.

"I never noticed that myself. I was unhappy at school, and in the world
people can be very happy."

Varden sighed and rolled about his eyes. "Are the fellows sorry for what
they did to me?" he asked in an affected voice. "I am sure I forgive
them from the bottom of my heart. We ought to forgive our enemies,
oughtn't we, sir?"

"But they aren't your enemies. If you meet in five years' time you may
find each other splendid fellows."

The boy would not admit this. He had been reading some revivalistic
literature. "We ought to forgive our enemies," he repeated; "and however
wicked they are, we ought not to wish them evil. When I was ill, and
death seemed nearest, I had many kind letters on this subject."

Rickie knew about these "many kind letters." Varden had induced the
silly nurse to write to people--people of all sorts, people that he
scarcely knew or did not know at all--detailing his misfortune, and
asking for spiritual aid and sympathy.

"I am sorry for them," he pursued. "I would not like to be like them."

Rickie sighed. He saw that a year at Dunwood House had produced a
sanctimonious prig. "Don't think about them, Varden. Think about
anything beautiful--say, music. You like music. Be happy. It's your
duty. You can't be good until you've had a little happiness. Then
perhaps you will think less about forgiving people and more about loving
them."

"I love them already, sir." And Rickie, in desperation, asked if he
might look at the many kind letters.

Permission was gladly given. A neat bundle was produced, and for about
twenty minutes the master perused it, while the invalid kept watch on
his face. Rooks cawed out in the playing-fields, and close under the
window there was the sound of delightful, good-tempered laughter. A boy
is no devil, whatever boys may be. The letters were chilly productions,
somewhat clerical in tone, by whomsoever written. Varden, because he was
ill at the time, had been taken seriously. The writers declared that
his illness was fulfilling some mysterious purpose: suffering engendered
spiritual growth: he was showing signs of this already. They consented
to pray for him, some majestically, others shyly. But they all consented
with one exception, who worded his refusal as follows:--

Dear A.C. Varden,--

I ought to say that I never remember seeing you. I am sorry that you are
ill, and hope you are wrong about it. Why did you not write before, for
I could have helped you then? When they pulled your ear, you ought to
have gone like this (here was a rough sketch). I could not undertake
praying, but would think of you instead, if that would do. I am
twenty-two in April, built rather heavy, ordinary broad face, with eyes,
etc. I write all this because you have mixed me with some one else, for
I am not married, and do not want to be. I cannot think of you always,
but will promise a quarter of an hour daily (say 7.00-7.15 A.M.), and
might come to see you when you are better--that is, if you are a kid,
and you read like one. I have been otter-hunting--

Yours sincerely,

Stephen Wonham



XXIII

Riekie went straight from Varden to his wife, who lay on the sofa in her
bedroom. There was now a wide gulf between them. She, like the world she
had created for him, was unreal.

"Agnes, darling," he began, stroking her hand, "such an awkward little
thing has happened."

"What is it, dear? Just wait till I've added up this hook."

She had got over the tragedy: she got over everything.

When she was at leisure he told her. Hitherto they had seldom mentioned
Stephen. He was classed among the unprofitable dead.

She was more sympathetic than he expected. "Dear Rickie," she murmured
with averted eyes. "How tiresome for you."

"I wish that Varden had stopped with Mrs. Orr."

"Well, he leaves us for good tomorrow."

"Yes, yes. And I made him answer the letter and apologize. They had
never met. It was some confusion with a man in the Church Army, living
at a place called Codford. I asked the nurse. It is all explained."

"There the matter ends."

"I suppose so--if matters ever end."

"If, by ill-luck, the person does call. I will just see him and say that
the boy has gone."

"You, or I. I have got over all nonsense by this time. He's absolutely
nothing to me now." He took up the tradesman's book and played with it
idly. On its crimson cover was stamped a grotesque sheep. How stale and
stupid their life had become!

"Don't talk like that, though," she said uneasily. "Think how disastrous
it would be if you made a slip in speaking to him."

"Would it? It would have been disastrous once. But I expect, as a matter
of fact, that Aunt Emily has made the slip already."

His wife was displeased. "You need not talk in that cynical way. I
credit Aunt Emily with better feeling. When I was there she did mention
the matter, but only once. She, and I, and all who have any sense of
decency, know better than to make slips, or to think of making them."

Agnes kept up what she called "the family connection." She had been once
alone to Cadover, and also corresponded with Mrs. Failing. She had never
told Rickie anything about her visit nor had he ever asked her. But,
from this moment, the whole subject was reopened.

"Most certainly he knows nothing," she continued. "Why, he does not even
realize that Varden lives in our house! We are perfectly safe--unless
Aunt Emily were to die. Perhaps then--but we are perfectly safe for the
present."

"When she did mention the matter, what did she say?"

"We had a long talk," said Agnes quietly. "She told me nothing
new--nothing new about the past, I mean. But we had a long talk about
the present. I think" and her voice grew displeased again--"that you
have been both wrong and foolish in refusing to make up your quarrel
with Aunt Emily."

"Wrong and wise, I should say."

"It isn't to be expected that she--so much older and so sensitive--can
make the first step. But I know she'd he glad to see you."

"As far as I can remember that final scene in the garden, I accused her
of 'forgetting what other people were like.' She'll never pardon me for
saying that."

Agnes was silent. To her the phrase was meaningless. Yet Rickie was
correct: Mrs. Failing had resented it more than anything.

"At all events," she suggested, "you might go and see her."

"No, dear. Thank you, no."

"She is, after all--" She was going to say "your father's sister," but
the expression was scarcely a happy one, and she turned it into, "She
is, after all, growing old and lonely."

"So are we all!" he cried, with a lapse of tone that was now
characteristic in him.

"She oughtn't to be so isolated from her proper relatives."

There was a moment's silence. Still playing with the book, he remarked,
"You forget, she's got her favourite nephew."

A bright red flush spread over her cheeks. "What is the matter with you
this afternoon?" she asked. "I should think you'd better go for a walk."

"Before I go, tell me what is the matter with you." He also flushed.
"Why do you want me to make it up with my aunt?"

"Because it's right and proper."

"So? Or because she is old?"

"I don't understand," she retorted. But her eyes dropped. His sudden
suspicion was true: she was legacy hunting.

"Agnes, dear Agnes," he began with passing tenderness, "how can you
think of such things? You behave like a poor person. We don't want any
money from Aunt Emily, or from any one else. It isn't virtue that makes
me say it: we are not tempted in that way: we have as much as we want
already."

"For the present," she answered, still looking aside.

"There isn't any future," he cried in a gust of despair.

"Rickie, what do you mean?"

What did he mean? He meant that the relations between them were
fixed--that there would never be an influx of interest, nor even of
passion. To the end of life they would go on beating time, and this was
enough for her. She was content with the daily round, the common task,
performed indifferently. But he had dreamt of another helpmate, and of
other things.

"We don't want money--why, we don't even spend any on travelling. I've
invested all my salary and more. As far as human foresight goes, we
shall never want money." And his thoughts went out to the tiny grave.
"You spoke of 'right and proper,' but the right and proper thing for my
aunt to do is to leave every penny she's got to Stephen."

Her lip quivered, and for one moment he thought that she was going to
cry. "What am I to do with you?" she said. "You talk like a person in
poetry."

"I'll put it in prose. He's lived with her for twenty years, and he
ought to be paid for it."

Poor Agnes! Indeed, what was she to do? The first moment she set foot
in Cadover she had thought, "Oh, here is money. We must try and get it."
Being a lady, she never mentioned the thought to her husband, but
she concluded that it would occur to him too. And now, though it had
occurred to him at last, he would not even write his aunt a little note.

He was to try her yet further. While they argued this point he flashed
out with, "I ought to have told him that day when he called up to our
room. There's where I went wrong first."

"Rickie!"

"In those days I was sentimental. I minded. For two pins I'd write to
him this afternoon. Why shouldn't he know he's my brother? What's all
this ridiculous mystery?"

She became incoherent.

"But WHY not? A reason why he shouldn't know."

"A reason why he SHOULD know," she retorted. "I never heard such
rubbish! Give me a reason why he should know."

"Because the lie we acted has ruined our lives."

She looked in bewilderment at the well-appointed room.

"It's been like a poison we won't acknowledge. How many times have you
thought of my brother? I've thought of him every day--not in love; don't
misunderstand; only as a medicine I shirked. Down in what they call
the subconscious self he has been hurting me." His voice broke. "Oh, my
darling, we acted a lie then, and this letter reminds us of it and gives
us one more chance. I have to say 'we' lied. I should be lying again if
I took quite all the blame. Let us ask God's forgiveness together. Then
let us write, as coldly as you please, to Stephen, and tell him he is my
father's son."

Her reply need not be quoted. It was the last time he attempted
intimacy. And the remainder of their conversation, though long and
stormy, is also best forgotten.

Thus the first effect of Varden's letter was to make them quarrel. They
had not openly disagreed before. In the evening he kissed her and said,
"How absurd I was to get angry about things that happened last year. I
will certainly not write to the person." She returned the kiss. But he
knew that they had destroyed the habit of reverence, and would quarrel
again. On his rounds he looked in at Varden and asked nonchalantly for
the letter. He carried it off to his room. It was unwise of him, for
his nerves were already unstrung, and the man he had tried to bury was
stirring ominously. In the silence he examined the handwriting till he
felt that a living creature was with him, whereas he, because his child
had died, was dead. He perceived more clearly the cruelty of Nature, to
whom our refinement and piety are but as bubbles, hurrying downwards on
the turbid waters. They break, and the stream continues. His father, as
a final insult, had brought into the world a man unlike all the rest of
them, a man dowered with coarse kindliness and rustic strength, a kind
of cynical ploughboy, against whom their own misery and weakness might
stand more vividly relieved. "Born an Elliot--born a gentleman." So
the vile phrase ran. But here was an Elliot whose badness was not even
gentlemanly. For that Stephen was bad inherently he never doubted for a
moment and he would have children: he, not Rickie, would contribute to
the stream; he, through his remote posterity, might mingled with the
unknown sea.

Thus musing he lay down to sleep, feeling diseased in body and soul. It
was no wonder that the night was the most terrible he had ever known. He
revisited Cambridge, and his name was a grey ghost over the door. Then
there recurred the voice of a gentle shadowy woman, Mrs. Aberdeen, "It
doesn't seem hardly right." Those had been her words, her only complaint
against the mysteries of change and death. She bowed her head and
laboured to make her "gentlemen" comfortable. She was labouring still.
As he lay in bed he asked God to grant him her wisdom; that he might
keep sorrow within due bounds; that he might abstain from extreme hatred
and envy of Stephen. It was seldom that he prayed so definitely, or
ventured to obtrude his private wishes. Religion was to him a service, a
mystic communion with good; not a means of getting what he wanted on the
earth. But tonight, through suffering, he was humbled, and became like
Mrs. Aberdeen. Hour after hour he awaited sleep and tried to endure the
faces that frothed in the gloom--his aunt's, his father's, and, worst
of all, the triumphant face of his brother. Once he struck at it, and
awoke, having hurt his hand on the wall. Then he prayed hysterically for
pardon and rest.

Yet again did he awake, and from a more mysterious dream. He heard his
mother crying. She was crying quite distinctly in the darkened room.
He whispered, "Never mind, my darling, never mind," and a voice echoed,
"Never mind--come away--let them die out--let them die out." He lit a
candle, and the room was empty. Then, hurrying to the window, he saw
above mean houses the frosty glories of Orion.

Henceforward he deteriorates. Let those who censure him suggest what
he should do. He has lost the work that he loved, his friends, and his
child. He remained conscientious and decent, but the spiritual part of
him proceeded towards ruin.



XXIV

The coming months, though full of degradation and anxiety, were to bring
him nothing so terrible as that night. It was the crisis of this
agony. He was an outcast and a failure. But he was not again forced to
contemplate these facts so clearly. Varden left in the morning, carrying
the fatal letter with him. The whole house was relieved. The good angel
was with the boys again, or else (as Herbert preferred to think) they
had learnt a lesson, and were more humane in consequence. At all events,
the disastrous term concluded quietly.

In the Christmas holidays the two masters made an abortive attempt to
visit Italy, and at Easter there was talk of a cruise in the Aegean.
Herbert actually went, and enjoyed Athens and Delphi. The Elliots paid a
few visits together in England. They returned to Sawston about ten days
before school opened, to find that Widdrington was again stopping
with the Jacksons. Intercourse was painful, for the two families were
scarcely on speaking terms; nor did the triumphant scaffoldings of
the new boarding-house make things easier. (The party of progress had
carried the day.) Widdrington was by nature touchy, but on this occasion
he refused to take offence, and often dropped in to see them. His manner
was friendly but critical. They agreed he was a nuisance. Then Agnes
left, very abruptly, to see Mrs. Failing, and while she was away Rickie
had a little stealthy intercourse.

Her absence, convenient as it was, puzzled him. Mrs. Silt, half goose,
half stormy-petrel, had recently paid a flying visit to Cadover, and
thence had flown, without an invitation, to Sawston. Generally she was
not a welcome guest. On this occasion Agnes had welcomed her, and--so
Rickie thought--had made her promise not to tell him something that she
knew. The ladies had talked mysteriously. "Mr. Silt would be one with
you there," said Mrs. Silt. Could there be any connection between the
two visits?

Agnes's letters told him nothing: they never did. She was too clumsy
or too cautious to express herself on paper. A drive to Stonehenge;
an anthem in the Cathedral; Aunt Emily's love. And when he met her at
Waterloo he learnt nothing (if there was anything to learn) from her
face.

"How did you enjoy yourself?"

"Thoroughly."

"Were you and she alone?"

"Sometimes. Sometimes other people."

"Will Uncle Tony's Essays be published?"

Here she was more communicative. The book was at last in proof. Aunt
Emily had written a charming introduction; but she was so idle, she
never finished things off.

They got into an omnibus for the Army and Navy Stores: she wanted to do
some shopping before going down to Sawston.

"Did you read any of the Essays?"

"Every one. Delightful. Couldn't put them down. Now and then he spoilt
them by statistics--but you should read his descriptions of Nature. He
agrees with you: says the hills and trees are alive! Aunt Emily called
you his spiritual heir, which I thought nice of her. We both so lamented
that you have stopped writing." She quoted fragments of the Essays as
they went up in the Stores' lift.

"What else did you talk about?"

"I've told you all my news. Now for yours. Let's have tea first."

They sat down in the corridor amid ladies in every stage of
fatigue--haggard ladies, scarlet ladies, ladies with parcels that
twisted from every finger like joints of meat. Gentlemen were scarcer,
but all were of the sub-fashionable type, to which Rickie himself now
belonged.

"I haven't done anything," he said feebly. "Ate, read, been rude to
tradespeople, talked to Widdrington. Herbert arrived this morning. He
has brought a most beautiful photograph of the Parthenon."

"Mr. Widdrington?"

"Yes."

"What did you talk about?"

She might have heard every word. It was only the feeling of pleasure
that he wished to conceal. Even when we love people, we desire to keep
some corner secret from them, however small: it is a human right: it is
personality. She began to cross-question him, but they were interrupted.
A young lady at an adjacent table suddenly rose and cried, "Yes, it is
you. I thought so from your walk." It was Maud Ansell.

"Oh, do come and join us!" he cried. "Let me introduce my wife." Maud
bowed quite stiffly, but Agnes, taking it for ill-breeding, was not
offended.

"Then I will come!" she continued in shrill, pleasant tones, adroitly
poising her tea things on either hand, and transferring them to the
Elliots' table. "Why haven't you ever come to us, pray?"

"I think you didn't ask me!"

"You weren't to be asked." She sprawled forward with a wagging finger.
But her eyes had the honesty of her brother's. "Don't you remember the
day you left us? Father said, 'Now, Mr. Elliot--' Or did he call you
'Elliot'? How one does forget. Anyhow, father said you weren't to wait
for an invitation, and you said, 'No, I won't.' Ours is a fair-sized
house,"--she turned somewhat haughtily to Agnes,--"and the second spare
room, on account of a harp that hangs on the wall, is always reserved
for Stewart's friends."


"How is Mr. Ansell, your brother?" Maud's face fell. "Hadn't you heard?"
she said in awe-struck tones.

"No."

"He hasn't got his fellowship. It's the second time he's failed.
That means he will never get one. He will never be a don, nor live in
Cambridge and that, as we had hoped."

"Oh, poor, poor fellow!" said Mrs. Elliot with a remorse that was
sincere, though her congratulations would not have been. "I am so very
sorry."

But Maud turned to Rickie. "Mr. Elliot, you might know. Tell me. What is
wrong with Stewart's philosophy? What ought he to put in, or to alter,
so as to succeed?"

Agnes, who knew better than this, smiled.

"I don't know," said Rickie sadly. They were none of them so clever,
after all.

"Hegel," she continued vindictively. "They say he's read too much Hegel.
But they never tell him what to read instead. Their own stuffy books,
I suppose. Look here--no, that's the 'Windsor.'" After a little groping
she produced a copy of "Mind," and handed it round as if it was a
geological specimen. "Inside that there's a paragraph written about
something Stewart's written about before, and there it says he's read
too much Hegel, and it seems now that that's been the trouble all
along." Her voice trembled. "I call it most unfair, and the fellowship's
gone to a man who has counted the petals on an anemone."

Rickie had no inclination to smile.

"I wish Stewart had tried Oxford instead."

"I don't wish it!"

"You say that," she continued hotly, "and then you never come to see
him, though you knew you were not to wait for an invitation."

"If it comes to that, Miss Ansell," retorted Rickie, in the laughing
tones that one adopts on such occasions, "Stewart won't come to me,
though he has had an invitation."

"Yes," chimed in Agnes, "we ask Mr. Ansell again and again, and he will
have none of us."

Maud looked at her with a flashing eye. "My brother is a very peculiar
person, and we ladies can't understand him. But I know one thing, and
that's that he has a reason all round for what he does. Look here, I
must be getting on. Waiter! Wai-ai-aiter! Bill, please. Separately, of
course. Call the Army and Navy cheap! I know better!"

"How does the drapery department compare?" said Agnes sweetly.

The girl gave a sharp choking sound, gathered up her parcels, and left
them. Rickie was too much disgusted with his wife to speak.

"Appalling person!" she gasped. "It was naughty of me, but I couldn't
help it. What a dreadful fate for a clever man! To fail in life
completely, and then to be thrown back on a family like that!"

"Maud is a snob and a Philistine. But, in her case, something emerges."

She glanced at him, but proceeded in her suavest tones, "Do let us make
one great united attempt to get Mr. Ansell to Sawston."

"No."

"What a changeable friend you are! When we were engaged you were always
talking about him."

"Would you finish your tea, and then we will buy the linoleum for the
cubicles."

But she returned to the subject again, not only on that day but
throughout the term. Could nothing be done for poor Mr. Ansell? It
seemed that she could not rest until all that he had once held dear was
humiliated. In this she strayed outside her nature: she was unpractical.
And those who stray outside their nature invite disaster. Rickie, goaded
by her, wrote to his friend again. The letter was in all ways unlike
his old self. Ansell did not answer it. But he did write to Mr. Jackson,
with whom he was not acquainted.

"Dear Mr. Jackson,--

"I understand from Widdrington that you have a large house. I would like
to tell you how convenient it would be for me to come and stop in it.
June suits me best.--

"Yours truly,

"Stewart Ansell"


To which Mr. Jackson replied that not only in June but during the whole
year his house was at the disposal of Mr. Ansell and of any one who
resembled him.

But Agnes continued her life, cheerfully beating time. She, too, knew
that her marriage was a failure, and in her spare moments regretted
it. She wished that her husband was handsomer, more successful, more
dictatorial. But she would think, "No, no; one mustn't grumble. It can't
be helped." Ansell was wrong in sup-posing she might ever leave Rickie.
Spiritual apathy prevented her. Nor would she ever be tempted by a
jollier man. Here criticism would willingly alter its tone. For Agnes
also has her tragedy. She belonged to the type--not necessarily an
elevated one--that loves once and once only. Her love for Gerald had
not been a noble passion: no imagination transfigured it. But such as it
was, it sprang to embrace him, and he carried it away with him when he
died. Les amours gui suivrent sont moins involuntaires: by an effort of
the will she had warmed herself for Rickie.

She is not conscious of her tragedy, and therefore only the gods need
weep at it. But it is fair to remember that hitherto she moves as one
from whom the inner life has been withdrawn.



XXV

"I am afraid," said Agnes, unfolding a letter that she had received in
the morning, "that things go far from satisfactorily at Cadover."

The three were alone at supper. It was the June of Rickie's second year
at Sawston.

"Indeed?" said Herbert, who took a friendly interest. "In what way?

"Do you remember us talking of Stephen--Stephen Wonham, who by an odd
coincidence--"

"Yes. Who wrote last year to that miserable failure Varden. I do."

"It is about him."

"I did not like the tone of his letter."

Agnes had made her first move. She waited for her husband to reply to
it. But he, though full of a painful curiosity, would not speak. She
moved again.

"I don't think, Herbert, that Aunt Emily, much as I like her, is the
kind of person to bring a young man up. At all events the results have
been disastrous this time."

"What has happened?"

"A tangle of things." She lowered her voice. "Drink."

"Dear! Really! Was Mrs. Failing fond of him?"

"She used to be. She let him live at Cadover ever since he was a little
boy. Naturally that cannot continue."

Rickie never spoke.

"And now he has taken to be violent and rude," she went on.

"In short, a beggar on horseback. Who is he? Has he got relatives?"

"She has always been both father and mother to him. Now it must all come
to an end. I blame her--and she blames herself--for not being severe
enough. He has grown up without fixed principles. He has always followed
his inclinations, and one knows the result of that."

Herbert assented. "To me Mrs. Failing's course is perfectly plain. She
has a certain responsibility. She must pay the youth's passage to one of
the colonies, start him handsomely in some business, and then break off
all communications."

"How funny! It is exactly what she is going to do."

"I shall then consider that she has behaved in a thoroughly honourable
manner." He held out his plate for gooseberries. "His letter to Varden
was neither helpful nor sympathetic, and, if written at all, it ought
to have been both. I am not in the least surprised to learn that he has
turned out badly. When you write next, would you tell her how sorry I
am?"

"Indeed I will. Two years ago, when she was already a little anxious,
she did so wish you could undertake him.

"I could not alter a grown man." But in his heart he thought he could,
and smiled at his sister amiably. "Terrible, isn't it?" he remarked to
Rickie. Rickie, who was trying not to mind anything, assented. And an
onlooker would have supposed them a dispassionate trio, who were sorry
both for Mrs. Failing and for the beggar who would bestride her horses'
backs no longer. A new topic was introduced by the arrival of the
evening post.

Herbert took up all the letters, as he often did.

"Jackson?" he exclaimed. "What does the fellow want?" He read, and his
tone was mollified, "'Dear Mr. Pembroke,--Could you, Mrs. Elliot, and
Mr. Elliot come to supper with us on Saturday next? I should not merely
be pleased, I should be grateful. My wife is writing formally to Mrs.
Elliot'--(Here, Agnes, take your letter),--but I venture to write as
well, and to add my more uncouth entreaties.'--An olive-branch. It is
time! But (ridiculous person!) does he think that we can leave the House
deserted and all go out pleasuring in term time?--Rickie, a letter for
you."

"Mine's the formal invitation," said Agnes. "How very odd! Mr. Ansell
will be there. Surely we asked him here! Did you know he knew the
Jacksons?"

"This makes refusal very difficult," said Herbert, who was anxious to
accept. "At all events, Rickie ought to go."

"I do not want to go," said Rickie, slowly opening his own letter. "As
Agnes says, Ansell has refused to come to us. I cannot put myself out
for him."

"Who's yours from?" she demanded.

"Mrs. Silt," replied Herbert, who had seen the handwriting. "I trust
she does not want to pay us a visit this term, with the examinations
impending and all the machinery at full pressure. Though, Rickie, you
will have to accept the Jacksons' invitation."

"I cannot possibly go. I have been too rude; with Widdrington we always
meet here. I'll stop with the boys--" His voice caught suddenly. He had
opened Mrs. Silt's letter.

"The Silts are not ill, I hope?"

"No. But, I say,"--he looked at his wife,--"I do think this is going too
far. Really, Agnes."

"What has happened?"

"It is going too far," he repeated. He was nerving himself for another
battle. "I cannot stand this sort of thing. There are limits."

He laid the letter down. It was Herbert who picked it up, and read:
"Aunt Emily has just written to us. We are so glad that her troubles are
over, in spite of the expense. It never does to live apart from one's
own relatives so much as she has done up to now. He goes next Saturday
to Canada. What you told her about him just turned the scale. She has
asked us--"

"No, it's too much," he interrupted. "What I told her--told her about
him--no, I will have it out at last. Agnes!"

"Yes?" said his wife, raising her eyes from Mrs. Jackson's formal
invitation.

"It's you--it's you. I never mentioned him to her. Why, I've never seen
her or written to her since. I accuse you."

Then Herbert overbore him, and he collapsed. He was asked what he meant.
Why was he so excited? Of what did he accuse his wife. Each time he
spoke more feebly, and before long the brother and sister were laughing
at him. He felt bewildered, like a boy who knows that he is right but
cannot put his case correctly. He repeated, "I've never mentioned him to
her. It's a libel. Never in my life." And they cried, "My dear Rickie,
what an absurd fuss!" Then his brain cleared. His eye fell on the letter
that his wife had received from his aunt, and he reopened the battle.

"Agnes, give me that letter, if you please."

"Mrs. Jackson's?"

"My aunt's."

She put her hand on it, and looked at him doubtfully. She saw that she
had failed to bully him.

"My aunt's letter," he repeated, rising to his feet and bending over the
table towards her.

"Why, dear?"

"Yes, why indeed?" echoed Herbert. He too had bullied Rickie, but from a
purer motive: he had tried to stamp out a dissension between husband and
wife. It was not the first time he had intervened.

"The letter. For this reason: it will show me what you have done. I
believe you have ruined Stephen. You have worked at it for two years.
You have put words into my mouth to 'turn the scale' against him. He
goes to Canada--and all the world thinks it is owing to me. As I said
before--I advise you to stop smiling--you have gone a little too far."

They were all on their feet now, standing round the little table. Agnes
said nothing, but the fingers of her delicate hand tightened upon the
letter. When her husband snatched at it she resisted, and with the
effect of a harlequinade everything went on the floor--lamb, mint
sauce, gooseberries, lemonade, whisky. At once they were swamped in
domesticities. She rang the bell for the servant, cries arose, dusters
were brought, broken crockery (a wedding present) picked up from the
carpet; while he stood wrathfully at the window, regarding the obscured
sun's decline.

"I MUST see her letter," he repeated, when the agitation was over. He
was too angry to be diverted from his purpose. Only slight emotions are
thwarted by an interlude of farce.

"I've had enough of this quarrelling," she retorted. "You know that the
Silts are inaccurate. I think you might have given me the benefit of
the doubt. If you will know--have you forgotten that ride you took with
him?"

"I--" he was again bewildered. "The ride where I dreamt--"

"The ride where you turned back because you could not listen to a
disgraceful poem?"

"I don't understand."

"The poem was Aunt Emily. He read it to you and a stray soldier.
Afterwards you told me. You said, 'Really it is shocking, his
ingratitude. She ought to know about it' She does know, and I should be
glad of an apology."

He had said something of the sort in a fit of irritation. Mrs. Silt was
right--he had helped to turn the scale.

"Whatever I said, you knew what I meant. You knew I'd sooner cut my
tongue out than have it used against him. Even then." He sighed. Had he
ruined his brother? A curious tenderness came over him, and passed when
he remembered his own dead child. "We have ruined him, then. Have you
any objection to 'we'? We have disinherited him."

"I decide against you," interposed Herbert. "I have now heard both
sides of this deplorable affair. You are talking most criminal nonsense.
'Disinherit!' Sentimental twaddle. It's been clear to me from the first
that Mrs. Failing has been imposed upon by the Wonham man, a person with
no legal claim on her, and any one who exposes him performs a public
duty--"

"--And gets money."

"Money?" He was always uneasy at the word. "Who mentioned money?"

"Just understand me, Herbert, and of what it is that I accuse my wife."
Tears came into his eyes. "It is not that I like the Wonham man, or
think that he isn't a drunkard and worse. He's too awful in every way.
But he ought to have my aunt's money, because he's lived all his life
with her, and is her nephew as much as I am. You see, my father went
wrong." He stopped, amazed at himself. How easy it had been to say! He
was withering up: the power to care about this stupid secret had died.

When Herbert understood, his first thought was for Dunwood House.

"Why have I never been told?" was his first remark.

"We settled to tell no one," said Agnes. "Rickie, in his anxiety to
prove me a liar, has broken his promise."

"I ought to have been told," said Herbert, his anger increasing. "Had I
known, I could have averted this deplorable scene."

"Let me conclude it," said Rickie, again collapsing and leaving the
dining-room. His impulse was to go straight to Cadover and make a
business-like statement of the position to Stephen. Then the man would
be armed, and perhaps fight the two women successfully, But he resisted
the impulse. Why should he help one power of evil against another? Let
them go intertwined to destruction. To enrich his brother would be as
bad as enriching himself. If their aunt's money ever did come to him,
he would refuse to accept it. That was the easiest and most dignified
course. He troubled himself no longer with justice or pity, and the next
day he asked his wife's pardon for his behaviour.

In the dining-room the conversation continued. Agnes, without much
difficulty, gained her brother as an ally. She acknowledged that she had
been wrong in not telling him, and he then declared that she had been
right on every other point. She slurred a little over the incident of
her treachery, for Herbert was sometimes clearsighted over details,
though easily muddled in a general survey. Mrs. Failing had had plenty
of direct causes of complaint, and she dwelt on these. She dealt,
too, on the very handsome way in which the young man, "though he knew
nothing, had never asked to know," was being treated by his aunt.

"'Handsome' is the word," said Herbert. "I hope not indulgently. He does
not deserve indulgence."

And she knew that he, like herself, could remember money, and that it
lent an acknowledged halo to her cause.

"It is not a savoury subject," he continued, with sudden stiffness. "I
understand why Rickie is so hysterical. My impulse"--he laid his hand on
her shoulder--"is to abandon it at once. But if I am to be of any use
to you, I must hear it all. There are moments when we must look facts in
the face."

She did not shrink from the subject as much as he thought, as much as
she herself could have wished. Two years before, it had filled her with
a physical loathing. But by now she had accustomed herself to it.

"I am afraid, Bertie boy, there is nothing else to bear, I have tried to
find out again and again, but Aunt Emily will not tell me. I suppose it
is natural. She wants to shield the Elliot name. She only told us in a
fit of temper; then we all agreed to keep it to ourselves; then Rickie
again mismanaged her, and ever since she has refused to let us know any
details."

"A most unsatisfactory position." "So I feel." She sat down again with
a sigh. Mrs. Failing had been a great trial to her orderly mind. "She is
an odd woman. She is always laughing. She actually finds it amusing that
we know no more."

"They are an odd family."

"They are indeed."

Herbert, with unusual sweetness, bent down and kissed her.

She thanked him.

Their tenderness soon passed. They exchanged it with averted eyes. It
embarrassed them. There are moments for all of us when we seem obliged
to speak in a new unprofitable tongue. One might fancy a seraph, vexed
with our normal language, who touches the pious to blasphemy,
the blasphemous to piety. The seraph passes, and we proceed
unaltered--conscious, however, that we have not been ourselves, and that
we may fail in this function yet again. So Agnes and Herbert, as they
proceeded to discuss the Jackson's supper-party, had an uneasy memory of
spiritual deserts, spiritual streams.



XXVI

Poor Mr. Ansell was actually sitting in the garden of Dunwood House. It
was Sunday morning. The air was full of roasting beef. The sound of
a manly hymn, taken very fast, floated over the road from the school
chapel. He frowned, for he was reading a book, the Essays of Anthony
Eustace Failing.

He was here on account of this book--at least so he told himself. It had
just been published, and the Jacksons were sure that Mr. Elliot would
have a copy. For a book one may go anywhere. It would not have been
logical to enter Dunwood House for the purpose of seeing Rickie, when
Rickie had not come to supper yesterday to see him. He was at Sawston to
assure himself of his friend's grave. With quiet eyes he had intended
to view the sods, with unfaltering fingers to inscribe the epitaph. Love
remained. But in high matters he was practical. He knew that it would be
useless to reveal it.

"Morning!" said a voice behind him.

He saw no reason to reply to this superfluous statement, and went on
with his reading.

"Morning!" said the voice again.

As for the Essays, the thought was somewhat old-fashioned, and he picked
many holes in it; nor was he anything but bored by the prospect of the
brotherhood of man. However, Mr. Failing stuck to his guns, such as they
were, and fired from them several good remarks. Very notable was his
distinction between coarseness and vulgarity (coarseness, revealing
something; vulgarity, concealing something), and his avowed preference
for coarseness. Vulgarity, to him, had been the primal curse, the shoddy
reticence that prevents man opening his heart to man, the power
that makes against equality. From it sprang all the things that
he hated--class shibboleths, ladies, lidies, the game laws, the
Conservative party--all the things that accent the divergencies rather
than the similarities in human nature. Whereas coarseness--But at this
point Herbert Pembroke had scrawled with a blue pencil: "Childish. One
reads no further."

"Morning!" repeated the voice.

Ansell read further, for here was the book of a man who had tried,
however unsuccessfully, to practice what he preached. Mrs. Failing, in
her Introduction, described with delicate irony his difficulties as a
landlord; but she did not record the love in which his name was held.
Nor could her irony touch him when he cried: "Attain the practical
through the unpractical. There is no other road." Ansell was inclined to
think that the unpractical is its own reward, but he respected those who
attempted to journey beyond it. We must all of us go over the mountains.
There is certainly no other road.

"Nice morning!" said the voice.

It was not a nice morning, so Ansell felt bound to speak. He answered:
"No. Why?" A clod of earth immediately struck him on the back. He turned
round indignantly, for he hated physical rudeness. A square man of ruddy
aspect was pacing the gravel path, his hands deep in his pockets. He was
very angry. Then he saw that the clod of earth nourished a blue lobelia,
and that a wound of corresponding size appeared on the pie-shaped bed.
He was not so angry. "I expect they will mind it," he reflected. Last
night, at the Jacksons', Agnes had displayed a brisk pity that made
him wish to wring her neck. Maude had not exaggerated. Mr. Pembroke had
patronized through a sorrowful voice and large round eyes. Till he
met these people he had never been told that his career was a failure.
Apparently it was. They would never have been civil to him if it had
been a success, if they or theirs had anything to fear from him.

In many ways Ansell was a conceited man; but he was never proud of being
right. He had foreseen Rickie's catastrophe from the first, but derived
from this no consolation. In many ways he was pedantic; but his
pedantry lay close to the vineyards of life--far closer than that fetich
Experience of the innumerable tea-cups. He had a great many facts to
learn, and before he died he learnt a suitable quantity. But he never
forgot that the holiness of the heart's imagination can alone classify
these facts--can alone decide which is an exception, which an example.
"How unpractical it all is!" That was his comment on Dunwood House.
"How unbusiness-like! They live together without love. They work without
conviction. They seek money without requiring it. They die, and nothing
will have happened, either for themselves or for others." It is a
comment that the academic mind will often make when first confronted
with the world.

But he was becoming illogical. The clod of earth had disturbed him.
Brushing the dirt off his back, he returned to the book. What a curious
affair was the essay on "Gaps"! Solitude, star-crowned, pacing the
fields of England, has a dialogue with Seclusion. He, poor little man,
lives in the choicest scenery--among rocks, forests, emerald lawns,
azure lakes. To keep people out he has built round his domain a high
wall, on which is graven his motto--"Procul este profani." But he cannot
enjoy himself. His only pleasure is in mocking the absent Profane. They
are in his mind night and day. Their blemishes and stupidities form the
subject of his great poem, "In the Heart of Nature." Then Solitude tells
him that so it always will be until he makes a gap in the wall, and
permits his seclusion to be the sport of circumstance. He obeys. The
Profane invade him; but for short intervals they wander elsewhere, and
during those intervals the heart of Nature is revealed to him.

This dialogue had really been suggested to Mr. Failing by a talk with
his brother-in-law. It also touched Ansell. He looked at the man who
had thrown the clod, and was now pacing with obvious youth and impudence
upon the lawn. "Shall I improve my soul at his expense?" he thought. "I
suppose I had better." In friendly tones he remarked, "Were you waiting
for Mr. Pembroke?"

"No," said the young man. "Why?"

Ansell, after a moment's admiration, flung the Essays at him. They hit
him in the back. The next moment he lay on his own back in the lobelia
pie.

"But it hurts!" he gasped, in the tones of a puzzled civilization. "What
you do hurts!" For the young man was nicking him over the shins with the
rim of the book cover. "Little brute-ee--ow!"

"Then say Pax!"

Something revolted in Ansell. Why should he say Pax? Freeing his hand,
he caught the little brute under the chin, and was again knocked into
the lobelias by a blow on the mouth.

"Say Pax!" he repeated, pressing the philosopher's skull into the mould;
and he added, with an anxiety that was somehow not offensive, "I do
advise you. You'd really better."

Ansell swallowed a little blood. He tried to move, and he could not.
He looked carefully into the young man's eyes and into the palm of his
right hand, which at present swung unclenched, and he said "Pax!"

"Shake hands!" said the other, helping him up. There was nothing Ansell
loathed so much as the hearty Britisher; but he shook hands, and they
stared at each other awkwardly. With civil murmurs they picked the
little blue flowers off each other's clothes. Ansell was trying to
remember why they had quarrelled, and the young man was wondering why he
had not guarded his chin properly. In the distance a hymn swung off--

"Fight the good. Fight with. All thy. Might."

They would be across from the chapel soon.

"Your book, sir?"

"Thank you, sir--yes."

"Why!" cried the young man--"why, it's 'What We Want'! At least the
binding's exactly the same."

"It's called 'Essays,'" said Ansell.

"Then that's it. Mrs. Failing, you see, she wouldn't call it that,
because three W's, you see, in a row, she said, are vulgar, and sound
like Tolstoy, if you've heard of him."

Ansell confessed to an acquaintance, and then said, "Do you think 'What
We Want' vulgar?" He was not at all interested, but he desired to escape
from the atmosphere of pugilistic courtesy, more painful to him than
blows themselves.

"It IS the same book," said the other--"same title, same binding." He
weighed it like a brick in his muddy hands.

"Open it to see if the inside corresponds," said Ansell, swallowing a
laugh and a little more blood with it.

With a liberal allowance of thumb-marks, he turned the pages over and
read, "'the rural silence that is not a poet's luxury but a practical
need for all men.' Yes, it is the same book." Smiling pleasantly over
the discovery, he handed it back to the owner.

"And is it true?"

"I beg your pardon?"

"Is it true that rural silence is a practical need?"

"Don't ask me!"

"Have you ever tried it?"

"What?"

"Rural silence."

"A field with no noise in it, I suppose you mean. I don't understand."

Ansell smiled, but a slight fire in the man's eye checked him. After
all, this was a person who could knock one down. Moreover, there was no
reason why he should be teased. He had it in him to retort "No. Why?"
He was not stupid in essentials. He was irritable--in Ansell's eyes a
frequent sign of grace. Sitting down on the upturned seat, he remarked,
"I like the book in many ways. I don't think 'What We Want' would have
been a vulgar title. But I don't intend to spoil myself on the chance of
mending the world, which is what the creed amounts to. Nor am I keen on
rural silences."

"Curse!" he said thoughtfully, sucking at an empty pipe.

"Tobacco?"

"Please."

"Rickie's is invariably--filthy."

"Who says I know Rickie?"

"Well, you know his aunt. It's a possible link. Be gentle with Rickie.
Don't knock him down if he doesn't think it's a nice morning."

The other was silent.

"Do you know him well?"

"Kind of." He was not inclined to talk. The wish to smoke was very
violent in him, and Ansell noticed how he gazed at the wreaths that
ascended from bowl and stem, and how, when the stem was in his mouth,
he bit it. He gave the idea of an animal with just enough soul to
contemplate its own bliss. United with refinement, such a type was
common in Greece. It is not common today, and Ansell was surprised to
find it in a friend of Rickie's. Rickie, if he could even "kind of know"
such a creature, must be stirring in his grave.

"Do you know his wife too?"

"Oh yes. In a way I know Agnes. But thank you for this tobacco. Last
night I nearly died. I have no money."

"Take the whole pouch--do."

After a moment's hesitation he did. "Fight the good" had scarcely ended,
so quickly had their intimacy grown.

"I suppose you're a friend of Rickie's?"

Ansell was tempted to reply, "I don't know him at all." But it seemed
no moment for the severer truths, so he said, "I knew him well at
Cambridge, but I have seen very little of him since."

"Is it true that his baby was lame?"

"I believe so."

His teeth closed on his pipe. Chapel was over. The organist was prancing
through the voluntary, and the first ripple of boys had already reached
Dunwood House. In a few minutes the masters would be here too, and
Ansell, who was becoming interested, hurried the conversation forward.

"Have you come far?"

"From Wiltshire. Do you know Wiltshire?" And for the first time there
came into his face the shadow of a sentiment, the passing tribute to
some mystery. "It's a good country. I live in one of the finest valleys
out of Salisbury Plain. I mean, I lived."

"Have you been dismissed from Cadover, without a penny in your pocket?"

He was alarmed at this. Such knowledge seemed simply diabolical. Ansell
explained that if his boots were chalky, if his clothes had obviously
been slept in, if he knew Mrs. Failing, if he knew Wiltshire, and if
he could buy no tobacco--then the deduction was possible. "You do just
attend," he murmured.

The house was filling with boys, and Ansell saw, to his regret, the head
of Agnes over the thuyia hedge that separated the small front garden
from the side lawn where he was sitting. After a few minutes it was
followed by the heads of Rickie and Mr. Pembroke. All the heads were
turned the other way. But they would find his card in the hall, and if
the man had left any message they would find that too. "What are you?"
he demanded. "Who are you--your name--I don't care about that. But it
interests me to class people, and up to now I have failed with you."

"I--" He stopped. Ansell reflected that there are worse answers. "I
really don't know what I am. Used to think I was something special, but
strikes me now I feel much like other chaps. Used to look down on the
labourers. Used to take for granted I was a gentleman, but really I
don't know where I do belong."

"One belongs to the place one sleeps in and to the people one eats
with."

"As often as not I sleep out of doors and eat by myself, so that doesn't
get you any further."

A silence, akin to poetry, invaded Ansell. Was it only a pose to like
this man, or was he really wonderful? He was not romantic, for Romance
is a figure with outstretched hands, yearning for the unattainable.
Certain figures of the Greeks, to whom we continually return, suggested
him a little. One expected nothing of him--no purity of phrase nor
swift edged thought. Yet the conviction grew that he had been back
somewhere--back to some table of the gods, spread in a field where there
is no noise, and that he belonged for ever to the guests with whom he
had eaten. Meanwhile he was simple and frank, and what he could tell he
would tell to any one. He had not the suburban reticence. Ansell asked
him, "Why did Mrs. Failing turn you out of Cadover? I should like to
hear that too."

"Because she was tired of me. Because, again, I couldn't keep quiet over
the farm hands. I ask you, is it right?" He became incoherent. Ansell
caught, "And they grow old--they don't play games--it ends they can't
play." An illustration emerged. "Take a kitten--if you fool about with
her, she goes on playing well into a cat."

"But Mrs. Failing minded no mice being caught."

"Mice?" said the young man blankly. "What I was going to say is, that
some one was jealous of my being at Cadover. I'll mention no names, but
I fancy it was Mrs. Silt. I'm sorry for her if it was. Anyhow, she set
Mrs. Failing against me. It came on the top of other things--and out I
went."

"What did Mrs. Silt, whose name I don't mention, say?"

He looked guilty. "I don't know. Easy enough to find something to say.
The point is that she said something. You know, Mr.--I don't know your
name, mine's Wonham, but I'm more grateful than I can put it over
this tobacco. I mean, you ought to know there is another side to this
quarrel. It's wrong, but it's there."

Ansell told him not to be uneasy: he lad already guessed that there
might be another side. But he could not make out why Mr. Wonham should
have come straight from the aunt to the nephew. They were now sitting
on the upturned seat. "What We Want," a good deal shattered, lay between
them.

"On account of above-mentioned reasons, there was a row. I don't
know--you can guess the style of thing. She wanted to treat me to the
colonies, and had up the parson to talk soft-sawder and make out that
a boundless continent was the place for a lad like me. I said, 'I can't
run up to the Rings without getting tired, nor gallop a horse out
of this view without tiring it, so what is the point of a boundless
continent?' Then I saw that she was frightened of me, and bluffed a bit
more, and in the end I was nipped. She caught me--just like her! when
I had nothing on but flannels, and was coming into the house, having
licked the Cadchurch team. She stood up in the doorway between those
stone pilasters and said, 'No! Never again!' and behind her was
Wilbraham, whom I tried to turn out, and the gardener, and poor old
Leighton, who hates being hurt. She said, 'There's a hundred pounds for
you at the London bank, and as much more in December. Go!' I said, 'Keep
your--money, and tell me whose son I am.' I didn't care really. I only
said it on the off-chance of hurting her. Sure enough, she caught on
to the doorhandle (being lame) and said, 'I can't--I promised--I don't
really want to,' and Wilbraham did stare. Then--she's very queer--she
burst out laughing, and went for the packet after all, and we heard her
laugh through the window as she got it. She rolled it at me down
the steps, and she says, 'A leaf out of the eternal comedy for you,
Stephen,' or something of that sort. I opened it as I walked down the
drive, she laughing always and catching on to the handle of the front
door. Of course it wasn't comic at all. But down in the village there
were both cricket teams, already a little tight, and the mad plumber
shouting 'Rights of Man!' They knew I was turned out. We did have a row,
and kept it up too. They daren't touch Wilbraham's windows, but there
isn't much glass left up at Cadover. When you start, it's worth going
on, but in the end I had to cut. They subscribed a bob here and a bob
there, and these are Flea Thompson's Sundays. I sent a line to Leighton
not to forward my own things: I don't fancy them. They aren't really
mine." He did not mention his great symbolic act, performed, it is to be
feared, when he was rather drunk and the friendly policeman was looking
the other way. He had cast all his flannels into the little millpond,
and then waded himself through the dark cold water to the new clothes
on the other side. Some one had flung his pipe and his packet after him.
The packet had fallen short. For this reason it was wet when he handed
it to Ansell, and ink that had been dry for twenty-three years had begun
to run again.

"I wondered if you're right about the hundred pounds," said Ansell
gravely. "It is pleasant to be proud, but it is unpleasant to die in the
night through not having any tobacco."

"But I'm not proud. Look how I've taken your pouch! The hundred pounds
was--well, can't you see yourself, it was quite different? It was, so to
speak, inconvenient for me to take the hundred pounds. Or look again how
I took a shilling from a boy who earns nine bob a-week! Proves pretty
conclusively I'm not proud."

Ansell saw it was useless to argue. He perceived, beneath the slatternly
use of words, the man, buttoned up in them, just as his body was
buttoned up in a shoddy suit,--and he wondered more than ever that such
a man should know the Elliots. He looked at the face, which was frank,
proud, and beautiful, if truth is beauty. Of mercy or tact such a face
knew little. It might be coarse, but it had in it nothing vulgar or
wantonly cruel. "May I read these papers?" he said.

"Of course. Oh yes; didn't I say? I'm Rickie's half-brother, come here
to tell him the news. He doesn't know. There it is, put shortly for
you. I was saying, though, that I bolted in the dark, slept in the
rifle-butts above Salisbury, the sheds where they keep the cardboard
men, you know, never locked up as they ought to be. I turned the whole
place upside down to teach them."

"Here is your packet again," said Ansell. "Thank you. How interesting!"
He rose from the seat and turned towards Dunwood House. He looked at
the bow-windows, the cheap picturesque gables, the terracotta dragons
clawing a dirty sky. He listened to the clink of plates and to the voice
of Mr. Pembroke taking one of his innumerable roll-calls. He looked at
the bed of lobelias. How interesting! What else was there to say?

"One must be the son of some one," remarked Stephen. And that was all
he had to say. To him those names on the moistened paper were mere
antiquities. He was neither proud of them nor ashamed. A man must have
parents, or he cannot enter the delightful world. A man, if he has
a brother, may reasonably visit him, for they may have interests in
common. He continued his narrative, how in the night he had heard the
clocks, how at daybreak, instead of entering the city, he had struck
eastward to save money,--while Ansell still looked at the house and
found that all his imagination and knowledge could lead him no farther
than this: how interesting!

"--And what do you think of that for a holy horror?"

"For a what?" said Ansell, his thoughts far away.

"This man I am telling you about, who gave me a lift towards Andover,
who said I was a blot on God's earth."

One o'clock struck. It was strange that neither of them had had any
summons from the house.

"He said I ought to be ashamed of myself. He said, 'I'll not be the
means of bringing shame to an honest gentleman and lady.' I told him
not to be a fool. I said I knew what I was about. Rickie and Agnes are
properly educated, which leads people to look at things straight, and
not go screaming about blots. A man like me, with just a little reading
at odd hours--I've got so far, and Rickie has been through Cambridge."

"And Mrs. Elliot?"

"Oh, she won't mind, and I told the man so; but he kept on saying, 'I'll
not be the means of bringing shame to an honest gentleman and lady,'
until I got out of his rotten cart." His eye watched the man a
Nonconformist, driving away over God's earth. "I caught the train by
running. I got to Waterloo at--"

Here the parlour-maid fluttered towards them, Would Mr. Wonham come in?
Mrs. Elliot would be glad to see him now.

"Mrs. Elliot?" cried Ansell. "Not Mr. Elliot?"

"It's all the same," said Stephen, and moved towards the house.

"You see, I only left my name. They don't know why I've come."

"Perhaps Mr. Elliot sees me meanwhile?"

The parlour-maid looked blank. Mr. Elliot had not said so. He had been
with Mrs. Elliot and Mr. Pembroke in the study. Now the gentlemen had
gone upstairs.

"All right, I can wait." After all, Rickie was treating him as he had
treated Rickie, as one in the grave, to whom it is futile to make any
loving motion. Gone upstairs--to brush his hair for dinner! The irony
of the situation appealed to him strongly. It reminded him of the Greek
Drama, where the actors know so little and the spectators so much.

"But, by the bye," he called after Stephen, "I think I ought to tell
you--don't--"

"What is it?"

"Don't--" Then he was silent. He had been tempted to explain everything,
to tell the fellow how things stood, that he must avoid this if he
wanted to attain that; that he must break the news to Rickie gently;
that he must have at least one battle royal with Agnes. But it was
contrary to his own spirit to coach people: he held the human soul to
be a very delicate thing, which can receive eternal damage from a little
patronage. Stephen must go into the house simply as himself, for thus
alone would he remain there.

"I ought to knock my pipe out? Was that it?" "By no means. Go in, your
pipe and you."

He hesitated, torn between propriety and desire. Then he followed the
parlour-maid into the house smoking. As he entered the dinner-bell rang,
and there was the sound of rushing feet, which died away into shuffling
and silence. Through the window of the boys' dining-hall came the
colourless voice of Rickie--"'Benedictus benedicat.'"

Ansell prepared himself to witness the second act of the drama;
forgetting that all this world, and not part of it, is a stage.



XXVII

The parlour-maid took Mr. Wonham to the study. He had been in the
drawing-room before, but had got bored, and so had strolled out into
the garden. Now he was in better spirits, as a man ought to be who has
knocked down a man. As he passed through the hall he sparred at the
teak monkey, and hung his cap on the bust of Hermes. And he greeted Mrs.
Elliot with a pleasant clap of laughter. "Oh, I've come with the most
tremendous news!" he cried.

She bowed, but did not shake hands, which rather surprised him. But
he never troubled over "details." He seldom watched people, and never
thought that they were watching him. Nor could he guess how much it
meant to her that he should enter her presence smoking. Had she not
said once at Cadover, "Oh, please smoke; I love the smell of a pipe"?

"Would you sit down? Exactly there, please." She placed him at a large
table, opposite an inkpot and a pad of blotting-paper.

"Will you tell your 'tremendous news' to me? My brother and my husband
are giving the boys their dinner."

"Ah!" said Stephen, who had had neither time nor money for breakfast in
London.

"I told them not to wait for me."

So he came to the point at once. He trusted this handsome woman. His
strength and his youth called to hers, expecting no prudish response.
"It's very odd. It is that I'm Rickie's brother. I've just found out.
I've come to tell you all."

"Yes?"

He felt in his pocket for the papers. "Half-brother I ought to have
said."

"Yes?"

"I'm illegitimate. Legally speaking, that is, I've been turned out of
Cadover. I haven't a penny. I--"

"There is no occasion to inflict the details." Her face, which had been
an even brown, began to flush slowly in the centre of the cheeks. The
colour spread till all that he saw of her was suffused, and she turned
away. He thought he had shocked her, and so did she. Neither knew that
the body can be insincere and express not the emotions we feel but those
that we should like to feel. In reality she was quite calm, and her
dislike of him had nothing emotional in it as yet.

"You see--" he began. He was determined to tell the fidgety story, for
the sooner it was over the sooner they would have something to eat.
Delicacy he lacked, and his sympathies were limited. But such as they
were, they rang true: he put no decorous phantom between him and his
desires.

"I do see. I have seen for two years." She sat down at the head of the
table, where there was another ink-pot. Into this she dipped a pen. "I
have seen everything, Mr. Wonham--who you are, how you have behaved at
Cadover, how you must have treated Mrs. Failing yesterday; and now"--her
voice became very grave--"I see why you have come here, penniless.
Before you speak, we know what you will say."

His mouth fell open, and he laughed so merrily that it might have given
her a warning. But she was thinking how to follow up her first success.
"And I thought I was bringing tremendous news!" he cried. "I only
twisted it out of Mrs. Failing last night. And Rickie knows too?"

"We have known for two years."

"But come, by the bye,--if you've known for two years, how is it you
didn't--" The laugh died out of his eyes. "You aren't ashamed?" he
asked, half rising from his chair. "You aren't like the man towards
Andover?"

"Please, please sit down," said Agnes, in the even tones she used
when speaking to the servants; "let us not discuss side issues. I am a
horribly direct person, Mr. Wonham. I go always straight to the point."
She opened a chequebook. "I am afraid I shall shock you. For how much?"

He was not attending.

"There is the paper we suggest you shall sign." She pushed towards him a
pseudo-legal document, just composed by Herbert.

"In consideration of the sum of..., I agree to perpetual silence--to
restrain from libellous...never to molest the said Frederick Elliot by
intruding--'"

His brain was not quick. He read the document over twice, and he could
still say, "But what's that cheque for?"

"It is my husband's. He signed for you as soon as we heard you were
here. We guessed you had come to be silenced. Here is his signature. But
he has left the filling in for me. For how much? I will cross it, shall
I? You will just have started a banking account, if I understand Mrs.
Failing rightly. It is not quite accurate to say you are penniless: I
heard from her just before you returned from your cricket. She allows
you two hundred a-year, I think. But this additional sum--shall I date
the cheque Saturday or for tomorrow?"

At last he found words. Knocking his pipe out on the table, he said
slowly, "Here's a very bad mistake."

"It is quite possible," retorted Agnes. She was glad she had taken the
offensive, instead of waiting till he began his blackmailing, as had
been the advice of Rickie. Aunt Emily had said that very spring, "One's
only hope with Stephen is to start bullying first." Here he was, quite
bewildered, smearing the pipe-ashes with his thumb. He asked to read the
document again. "A stamp and all!" he remarked.

They had anticipated that his claim would exceed two pounds.

"I see. All right. It takes a fool a minute. Never mind. I've made a bad
mistake."

"You refuse?" she exclaimed, for he was standing at the door. "Then do
your worst! We defy you!"

"That's all right, Mrs. Elliot," he said roughly. "I don't want a scene
with you, nor yet with your husband. We'll say no more about it. It's
all right. I mean no harm."

"But your signature then! You must sign--you--"

He pushed past her, and said as he reached for his cap, "There, that's
all right. It's my mistake. I'm sorry." He spoke like a farmer who has
failed to sell a sheep. His manner was utterly prosaic, and up to the
last she thought he had not understood her. "But it's money we offer
you," she informed him, and then darted back to the study, believing
for one terrible moment that he had picked up the blank cheque. When she
returned to the hall he had gone. He was walking down the road rather
quickly. At the corner he cleared his throat, spat into the gutter, and
disappeared.

"There's an odd finish," she thought. She was puzzled, and determined to
recast the interview a little when she related it to Rickie. She had
not succeeded, for the paper was still unsigned. But she had so cowed
Stephen that he would probably rest content with his two hundred a-year,
and never come troubling them again. Clever management, for one knew
him to be rapacious: she had heard tales of him lending to the poor
and exacting repayment to the uttermost farthing. He had also stolen at
school. Moderately triumphant, she hurried into the side-garden: she had
just remembered Ansell: she, not Rickie, had received his card.

"Oh, Mr. Ansell!" she exclaimed, awaking him from some day-dream.
"Haven't either Rickie or Herbert been out to you? Now, do come into
dinner, to show you aren't offended. You will find all of us assembled
in the boys' dining-hall."

To her annoyance he accepted.

"That is, if the Jacksons are not expecting you."

The Jacksons did not matter. If he might brush his clothes and bathe his
lip, he would like to come.

"Oh, what has happened to you? And oh, my pretty lobelias!"

He replied, "A momentary contact with reality," and she, who did not
look for sense in his remarks, hurried away to the dining-hall to
announce him.

The dining-hall was not unlike the preparation room. There was the
same parquet floor, and dado of shiny pitchpine. On its walls also
were imperial portraits, and over the harmonium to which they sang the
evening hymns was spread the Union Jack. Sunday dinner, the most pompous
meal of the week, was in progress. Her brother sat at the head of the
high table, her husband at the head of the second. To each he gave a
reassuring nod and went to her own seat, which was among the junior
boys. The beef was being carried out; she stopped it. "Mr. Ansell
is coming," she called. "Herbert there is more room by you; sit up
straight, boys." The boys sat up straight, and a respectful hush spread
over the room.

"Here he is!" called Rickie cheerfully, taking his cue from his wife.
"Oh, this is splendid!" Ansell came in. "I'm so glad you managed this.
I couldn't leave these wretches last night!" The boys tittered suitably.
The atmosphere seemed normal. Even Herbert, though longing to hear what
had happened to the blackmailer, gave adequate greeting to their guest:
"Come in, Mr. Ansell; come here. Take us as you find us!"

"I understood," said Stewart, "that I should find you all. Mrs. Elliot
told me I should. On that understanding I came."

It was at once evident that something had gone wrong.

Ansell looked round the room carefully. Then clearing his throat and
ruffling his hair, he began--"I cannot see the man with whom I have
talked, intimately, for an hour, in your garden."

The worst of it was they were all so far from him and from each other,
each at the end of a tableful of inquisitive boys. The two masters
looked at Agnes for information, for her reassuring nod had not told
them much. She looked hopelessly back.

"I cannot see this man," repeated Ansell, who remained by the harmonium
in the midst of astonished waitresses. "Is he to be given no lunch?"

Herbert broke the silence by fresh greetings. Rickie knew that the
contest was lost, and that his friend had sided with the enemy. It was
the kind of thing he would do. One must face the catastrophe quietly
and with dignity. Perhaps Ansell would have turned on his heel, and left
behind him only vague suspicions, if Mrs. Elliot had not tried to talk
him down. "Man," she cried--"what man? Oh, I know--terrible bore! Did
he get hold of you?"--thus committing their first blunder, and causing
Ansell to say to Rickie, "Have you seen your brother?"

"I have not."

"Have you been told he was here?"

Rickie's answer was inaudible.

"Have you been told you have a brother?"

"Let us continue this conversation later."

"Continue it? My dear man, how can we until you know what I'm talking
about? You must think me mad; but I tell you solemnly that you have a
brother of whom you've never heard, and that he was in this house ten
minutes ago." He paused impressively. "Your wife has happened to see
him first. Being neither serious nor truthful, she is keeping you apart,
telling him some lie and not telling you a word."

There was a murmur of alarm. One of the prefects rose, and Ansell set
his back to the wall, quite ready for a battle. For two years he had
waited for his opportunity. He would hit out at Mrs. Elliot like
any ploughboy now that it had come. Rickie said: "There is a slight
misunderstanding. I, like my wife, have known what there is to know for
two years"--a dignified rebuff, but their second blunder.

"Exactly," said Agnes. "Now I think Mr. Ansell had better go."

"Go?" exploded Ansell. "I've everything to say yet. I beg your pardon,
Mrs. Elliot, I am concerned with you no longer. This man"--he turned
to the avenue of faces--"this man who teaches you has a brother. He has
known of him two years and been ashamed. He has--oh--oh--how it fits
together! Rickie, it's you, not Mrs. Silt, who must have sent tales of
him to your aunt. It's you who've turned him out of Cadover. It's you
who've ordered him to be ruined today."

Now Herbert arose. "Out of my sight, sir! But have it from me first that
Rickie and his aunt have both behaved most generously. No, no, Agnes,
I'll not be interrupted. Garbled versions must not get about. If the
Wonham man is not satisfied now, he must be insatiable. He cannot levy
blackmail on us for ever. Sir, I give you two minutes; then you will be
expelled by force."

"Two minutes!" sang Ansell. "I can say a great deal in that." He put
one foot on a chair and held his arms over the quivering room. He seemed
transfigured into a Hebrew prophet passionate for satire and the truth.
"Oh, keep quiet for two minutes," he cried, "and I'll tell you something
you'll be glad to hear. You're a little afraid Stephen may come back.
Don't be afraid. I bring good news. You'll never see him nor any one
like him again. I must speak very plainly, for you are all three
fools. I don't want you to say afterwards, 'Poor Mr. Ansell tried to be
clever.' Generally I don't mind, but I should mind today. Please listen.
Stephen is a bully; he drinks; he knocks one down; but he would sooner
die than take money from people he did not love. Perhaps he will die,
for he has nothing but a few pence that the poor gave him and some
tobacco which, to my eternal glory, he accepted from me. Please listen
again. Why did he come here? Because he thought you would love him, and
was ready to love you. But I tell you, don't be afraid. He would sooner
die now than say you were his brother. Please listen again--"

"Now, Stewart, don't go on like that," said Rickie bitterly. "It's easy
enough to preach when you are an outsider. You would be more
charitable if such a thing had happened to yourself. Easy enough to be
unconventional when you haven't suffered and know nothing of the facts.
You love anything out of the way, anything queer, that doesn't often
happen, and so you get excited over this. It's useless, my dear man;
you have hurt me, but you will never upset me. As soon as you stop this
ridiculous scene we will finish our dinner. Spread this scandal; add
to it. I'm too old to mind such nonsense. I cannot help my father's
disgrace, on the one hand; nor, on the other, will I have anything to do
with his blackguard of a son."

So the secret was given to the world. Agnes might colour at his speech;
Herbert might calculate the effect of it on the entries for Dunwood
House; but he cared for none of these things. Thank God! he was withered
up at last.

"Please listen again," resumed Ansell. "Please correct two slight
mistakes: firstly, Stephen is one of the greatest people I have ever
met; secondly, he's not your father's son. He's the son of your mother."

It was Rickie, not Ansell, who was carried from the hall, and it was
Herbert who pronounced the blessing--

"Benedicto benedicatur."

A profound stillness succeeded the storm, and the boys, slipping away
from their meal, told the news to the rest of the school, or put it in
the letters they were writing home.



XXVIII

The soul has her own currency. She mints her spiritual coinage and
stamps it with the image of some beloved face. With it she pays her
debts, with it she reckons, saying, "This man has worth, this man is
worthless." And in time she forgets its origin; it seems to her to be a
thing unalterable, divine. But the soul can also have her bankruptcies.

Perhaps she will be the richer in the end. In her agony she learns to
reckon clearly. Fair as the coin may have been, it was not accurate; and
though she knew it not, there were treasures that it could not buy. The
face, however beloved, was mortal, and as liable as the soul herself to
err. We do but shift responsibility by making a standard of the dead.

There is, indeed, another coinage that bears on it not man's image but
God's. It is incorruptible, and the soul may trust it safely; it will
serve her beyond the stars. But it cannot give us friends, or the
embrace of a lover, or the touch of children, for with our fellow
mortals it has no concern. It cannot even give the joys we call
trivial--fine weather, the pleasures of meat and drink, bathing and the
hot sand afterwards, running, dreamless sleep. Have we learnt the true
discipline of a bankruptcy if we turn to such coinage as this? Will it
really profit us so much if we save our souls and lose the whole world?




PART 3 -- WILTSHIRE

XXIX

Robert--there is no occasion to mention his surname: he was a young
farmer of some education who tried to coax the aged soil of Wiltshire
scientifically--came to Cadover on business and fell in love with Mrs.
Elliot. She was there on her bridal visit, and he, an obscure nobody,
was received by Mrs. Failing into the house and treated as her social
equal. He was good-looking in a bucolic way, and people sometimes
mistook him for a gentleman until they saw his hands. He discovered
this, and one of the slow, gentle jokes he played on society was to
talk upon some cultured subject with his hands behind his back and then
suddenly reveal them. "Do you go in for boating?" the lady would ask;
and then he explained that those particular weals are made by the
handles of the plough. Upon which she became extremely interested, but
found an early opportunity of talking to some one else.

He played this joke on Mrs. Elliot the first evening, not knowing that
she observed him as he entered the room. He walked heavily, lifting his
feet as if the carpet was furrowed, and he had no evening clothes. Every
one tried to put him at his ease, but she rather suspected that he was
there already, and envied him. They were introduced, and spoke of Byron,
who was still fashionable. Out came his hands--the only rough hands in
the drawing-room, the only hands that had ever worked. She was filled
with some strange approval, and liked him.

After dinner they met again, to speak not of Byron but of manure. The
other people were so clever and so amusing that it relieved her to
listen to a man who told her three times not to buy artificial manure
ready made, but, if she would use it, to make it herself at the last
moment. Because the ammonia evaporated. Here were two packets of powder.
Did they smell? No. Mix them together and pour some coffee--An appalling
smell at once burst forth, and every one began to cough and cry. This
was good for the earth when she felt sour, for he knew when the earth
was ill. He knew, too, when she was hungry he spoke of her tantrums--the
strange unscientific element in her that will baffle the scientist to
the end of time. "Study away, Mrs. Elliot," he told her; "read all the
books you can get hold of; but when it comes to the point, stroll out
with a pipe in your mouth and do a bit of guessing." As he talked, the
earth became a living being--or rather a being with a living skin,--and
manure no longer dirty stuff, but a symbol of regeneration and of the
birth of life from life. "So it goes on for ever!" she cried excitedly.
He replied: "Not for ever. In time the fire at the centre will cool, and
nothing can go on then."

He advanced into love with open eyes, slowly, heavily, just as he had
advanced across the drawing room carpet. But this time the bride did not
observe his tread. She was listening to her husband, and trying not to
be so stupid. When he was close to her--so close that it was difficult
not to take her in his arms--he spoke to Mr. Failing, and was at once
turned out of Cadover.

"I'm sorry," said Mr. Failing, as he walked down the drive with his hand
on his guest's shoulder. "I had no notion you were that sort. Any one
who behaves like that has to stop at the farm."

"Any one?"

"Any one." He sighed heavily, not for any personal grievance, but
because he saw how unruly, how barbaric, is the soul of man. After all,
this man was more civilized than most.

"Are you angry with me, sir?" He called him "sir," not because he was
richer or cleverer or smarter, not because he had helped to educate him
and had lent him money, but for a reason more profound--for the reason
that there are gradations in heaven.

"I did think you--that a man like you wouldn't risk making people
unhappy. My sister-in-law--I don't say this to stop you loving her;
something else must do that--my sister-in-law, as far as I know, doesn't
care for you one little bit. If you had said anything, if she had
guessed that a chance person was in--this fearful state, you would
simply--have opened hell. A woman of her sort would have lost all--"

"I knew that."

Mr. Failing removed his hand. He was displeased.

"But something here," said Robert incoherently. "This here." He struck
himself heavily on the heart. "This here, doing something so unusual,
makes it not matter what she loses--I--" After a silence he asked, "Have
I quite followed you, sir, in that business of the brotherhood of man?"

"How do you mean?"

"I thought love was to bring it about."

"Love of another man's wife? Sensual love? You have understood
nothing--nothing." Then he was ashamed, and cried, "I understand nothing
myself." For he remembered that sensual and spiritual are not easy words
to use; that there are, perhaps, not two Aphrodites, but one Aphrodite
with a Janus face. "I only understand that you must try to forget her."

"I will not try."

"Promise me just this, then--not to do anything crooked."

"I'm straight. No boasting, but I couldn't do a crooked thing--No, not
if I tried."

And so appallingly straight was he in after years, that Mr. Failing
wished that he had phrased the promise differently.

Robert simply waited. He told himself that it was hopeless; but
something deeper than himself declared that there was hope. He gave up
drink, and kept himself in all ways clean, for he wanted to be worthy
of her when the time came. Women seemed fond of him, and caused him to
reflect with pleasure, "They do run after me. There must be something in
me. Good. I'd be done for if there wasn't." For six years he turned up
the earth of Wiltshire, and read books for the sake of his mind, and
talked to gentlemen for the sake of their patois, and each year he rode
to Cadover to take off his hat to Mrs. Elliot, and, perhaps, to speak
to her about the crops. Mr. Failing was generally present, and it struck
neither man that those dull little visits were so many words out of
which a lonely woman might build sentences. Then Robert went to London
on business. He chanced to see Mr. Elliot with a strange lady. The time
had come.

He became diplomatic, and called at Mr. Elliot's rooms to find things
out. For if Mrs. Elliot was happier than he could ever make her, he
would withdraw, and love her in renunciation. But if he could make her
happier, he would love her in fulfilment. Mr. Elliot admitted him as a
friend of his brother-in-law's, and felt very broad-minded as he did
so. Robert, however, was a success. The youngish men there found him
interesting, and liked to shock him with tales of naughty London and
naughtier Paris. They spoke of "experience" and "sensations" and "seeing
life," and when a smile ploughed over his face, concluded that his
prudery was vanquished. He saw that they were much less vicious than
they supposed: one boy had obviously read his sensations in a book. But
he could pardon vice. What he could not pardon was triviality, and he
hoped that no decent woman could pardon it either. There grew up in him
a cold, steady anger against these silly people who thought it advanced
to be shocking, and who described, as something particularly choice and
educational, things that he had understood and fought against for years.
He inquired after Mrs. Elliot, and a boy tittered. It seemed that she
"did not know," that she lived in a remote suburb, taking care of a
skinny baby. "I shall call some time or other," said Robert. "Do," said
Mr. Elliot, smiling. And next time he saw his wife he congratulated her
on her rustic admirer.

She had suffered terribly. She had asked for bread, and had been given
not even a stone. People talk of hungering for the ideal, but there is
another hunger, quite as divine, for facts. She had asked for facts
and had been given "views," "emotional standpoints," "attitudes towards
life." To a woman who believed that facts are beautiful, that the living
world is beautiful beyond the laws of beauty, that manure is neither
gross nor ludicrous, that a fire, not eternal, glows at the heart of
the earth, it was intolerable to be put off with what the Elliots called
"philosophy," and, if she refused, to be told that she had no sense of
humour. "Tarrying into the Elliot family." It had sounded so splendid,
for she was a penniless child with nothing to offer, and the Elliots
held their heads high. For what reason? What had they ever done, except
say sarcastic things, and limp, and be refined? Mr. Failing suffered
too, but she suffered more, inasmuch as Frederick was more impossible
than Emily. He did not like her, he practically lived apart, he was not
even faithful or polite. These were grave faults, but they were human
ones: she could even imagine them in a man she loved. What she could
never love was a dilettante.

Robert brought her an armful of sweet-peas. He laid it on the table,
put his hands behind his back, and kept them there till the end of the
visit. She knew quite well why he had come, and though she also knew
that he would fail, she loved him too much to snub him or to stare in
virtuous indignation. "Why have you come?" she asked gravely, "and why
have you brought me so many flowers?"

"My garden is full of them," he answered. "Sweetpeas need picking down.
And, generally speaking, flowers are plentiful in July."

She broke his present into bunches--so much for the drawing-room, so
much for the nursery, so much for the kitchen and her husband's room:
he would be down for the night. The most beautiful she would keep for
herself. Presently he said, "Your husband is no good. I've watched him
for a week. I'm thirty, and not what you call hasty, as I used to be,
or thinking that nothing matters like the French. No. I'm a plain
Britisher, yet--I--I've begun wrong end, Mrs. Elliot; I should have said
that I've thought chiefly of you for six years, and that though I talk
here so respectfully, if I once unhooked my hands--"

There was a pause. Then she said with great sweetness, "Thank you; I am
glad you love me," and rang the bell.

"What have you done that for?" he cried.

"Because you must now leave the house, and never enter it again."

"I don't go alone," and he began to get furious.

Her voice was still sweet, but strength lay in it too, as she said,
"You either go now with my thanks and blessing, or else you go with
the police. I am Mrs. Elliot. We need not discuss Mr. Elliot. I am Mrs.
Elliot, and if you make one step towards me I give you in charge."

But the maid answered the bell not of the drawing-room, but of the front
door. They were joined by Mr. Elliot, who held out his hand with much
urbanity. It was not taken. He looked quickly at his wife, and said, "Am
I de trop?" There was a long silence. At last she said, "Frederick, turn
this man out."

"My love, why?"

Robert said that he loved her.

"Then I am de trop," said Mr. Elliot, smoothing out his gloves. He would
give these sodden barbarians a lesson. "My hansom is waiting at the
door. Pray make use of it."

"Don't!" she cried, almost affectionately. "Dear Frederick, it isn't a
play. Just tell this man to go, or send for the police."

"On the contrary; it is French comedy of the best type. Don't you agree,
sir, that the police would be an inartistic error?" He was perfectly
calm and collected, whereas they were in a pitiable state.

"Turn him out at once!" she cried. "He has insulted your wife. Save me,
save me!" She clung to her husband and wept. "He was going I had managed
him--he would never have known--" Mr. Elliot repulsed her.

"If you don't feel inclined to start at once," he said with easy
civility, "Let us have a little tea. My dear sir, do forgive me for not
shooting you. Nous avons change tout cela. Please don't look so nervous.
Please do unclasp your hands--"

He was alone.

"That's all right," he exclaimed, and strolled to the door. The hansom
was disappearing round the corner. "That's all right," he repeated in
more quavering tones as he returned to the drawing-room and saw that it
was littered with sweet-peas. Their colour got on his nerves--magenta,
crimson; magenta, crimson. He tried to pick them up, and they escaped.
He trod them underfoot, and they multiplied and danced in the triumph
of summer like a thousand butterflies. The train had left when he got to
the station. He followed on to London, and there he lost all traces.
At midnight he began to realize that his wife could never belong to him
again.

Mr. Failing had a letter from Stockholm. It was never known what impulse
sent them there. "I am sorry about it all, but it was the only way."
The letter censured the law of England, "which obliges us to behave like
this, or else we should never get married. I shall come back to face
things: she will not come back till she is my wife. He must bring an
action soon, or else we shall try one against him. It seems all very
unconventional, but it is not really, it is only a difficult start. We
are not like you or your wife: we want to be just ordinary people, and
make the farm pay, and not be noticed all our lives."

And they were capable of living as they wanted. The class difference,
which so intrigued Mrs. Failing, meant very little to them. It was
there, but so were other things.

They both cared for work and living in the open, and for not speaking
unless they had got something to say. Their love of beauty, like their
love for each other, was not dependent on detail: it grew not from the
nerves but from the soul.

"I believe a leaf of grass is no less than the journey work of the stars
And the pismire is equally perfect, and a grain of sand, and the egg of
the wren, And the tree toad is a chef-d'oeuvre for the highest, And the
running blackberry would adorn the parlours of heaven."

They had never read these lines, and would have thought them nonsense if
they had. They did not dissect--indeed they could not. But she, at all
events, divined that more than perfect health and perfect weather, more
than personal love, had gone to the making of those seventeen days.

"Ordinary people!" cried Mrs. Failing on hearing the letter. At that
time she was young and daring. "Why, they're divine! They're forces of
Nature! They're as ordinary as volcanoes. We all knew my brother was
disgusting, and wanted him to be blown to pieces, but we never thought
it would happen. Do look at the thing bravely, and say, as I do, that
they are guiltless in the sight of God."

"I think they are," replied her husband. "But they are not guiltless in
the sight of man."

"You conventional!" she exclaimed in disgust. "What they have done means
misery not only for themselves but for others. For your brother, though
you will not think of him. For the little boy--did you think of him? And
perhaps for another child, who will have the whole world against him if
it knows. They have sinned against society, and you do not diminish
the misery by proving that society is bad or foolish. It is the saddest
truth I have yet perceived that the Beloved Republic"--here she took up
a book--"of which Swinburne speaks"--she put the book down--"will not
be brought about by love alone. It will approach with no flourish
of trumpets, and have no declaration of independence. Self-sacrifice
and--worse still--self-mutilation are the things that sometimes help it
most, and that is why we should start for Stockholm this evening." He
waited for her indignation to subside, and then continued. "I don't know
whether it can be hushed up. I don't yet know whether it ought to be
hushed up. But we ought to provide the opportunity. There is no scandal
yet. If we go, it is just possible there never will be any. We must talk
over the whole thing and--"

"--And lie!" interrupted Mrs. Failing, who hated travel.

"--And see how to avoid the greatest unhappiness."

There was to be no scandal. By the time they arrived Robert had been
drowned. Mrs. Elliot described how they had gone swimming, and how,
"since he always lived inland," the great waves had tired him. They had
raced for the open sea.

"What are your plans?" he asked. "I bring you a message from Frederick."

"I heard him call," she continued, "but I thought he was laughing. When
I turned, it was too late. He put his hands behind his back and sank.
For he would only have drowned me with him. I should have done the
same."

Mrs. Failing was thrilled, and kissed her. But Mr. Failing knew that
life does not continue heroic for long, and he gave her the message from
her husband: Would she come back to him?

To his intense astonishment--at first to his regret--she replied, "I
will think about it. If I loved him the very least bit I should say no.
If I had anything to do with my life I should say no. But it is simply
a question of beating time till I die. Nothing that is coming matters. I
may as well sit in his drawing-room and dust his furniture, since he has
suggested it."

And Mr. Elliot, though he made certain stipulations, was positively glad
to see her. People had begun to laugh at him, and to say that his wife
had run away. She had not. She had been with his sister in Sweden. In
a half miraculous way the matter was hushed up. Even the Silts only
scented "something strange." When Stephen was born, it was abroad. When
he came to England, it was as the child of a friend of Mr. Failing's.
Mrs. Elliot returned unsuspected to her husband.

But though things can be hushed up, there is no such thing as beating
time; and as the years passed she realized her terrible mistake. When
her lover sank, eluding her last embrace, she thought, as Agnes was to
think after her, that her soul had sunk with him, and that never again
should she be capable of earthly love. Nothing mattered. She might as
well go and be useful to her husband and to the little boy who looked
exactly like him, and who, she thought, was exactly like him in
disposition. Then Stephen was born, and altered her life. She could
still love people passionately; she still drew strength from the heroic
past. Yet, to keep to her bond, she must see this son only as a
stranger. She was protected be the conventions, and must pay them their
fee. And a curious thing happened. Her second child drew her towards her
first. She began to love Rickie also, and to be more than useful to him.
And as her love revived, so did her capacity for suffering. Life, more
important, grew more bitter. She minded her husband more, not less; and
when at last he died, and she saw a glorious autumn, beautiful with the
voices of boys who should call her mother, the end came for her as well,
before she could remember the grave in the alien north and the dust that
would never return to the dear fields that had given it.



XXX

Stephen, the son of these people, had one instinct that troubled him.
At night--especially out of doors--it seemed rather strange that he was
alive. The dry grass pricked his cheek, the fields were invisible and
mute, and here was he, throwing stones at the darkness or smoking a
pipe. The stones vanished, the pipe would burn out. But he would be here
in the morning when the sun rose, and he would bathe, and run in the
mist. He was proud of his good circulation, and in the morning it seemed
quite natural. But at night, why should there be this difference between
him and the acres of land that cooled all round him until the sun
returned? What lucky chance had heated him up, and sent him, warm and
lovable, into a passive world? He had other instincts, but these gave
him no trouble. He simply gratified each as it occurred, provided he
could do so without grave injury to his fellows. But the instinct to
wonder at the night was not to be thus appeased. At first he had lived
under the care of Mr. Failing the only person to whom his mother spoke
freely, the only person who had treated her neither as a criminal nor as
a pioneer. In their rare but intimate conversations she had asked him to
educate her son. "I will teach him Latin," he answered. "The rest such
a boy must remember." Latin, at all events, was a failure: who could
attend to Virgil when the sound of the thresher arose, and you knew
that the stack was decreasing and that rats rushed more plentifully each
moment to their doom? But he was fond of Mr. Failing, and cried when he
died. Mrs. Elliot, a pleasant woman, died soon after.

There was something fatal in the order of these deaths. Mr. Failing had
made no provision for the boy in his will: his wife had promised to
see to this. Then came Mr. Elliot's death, and, before the new home
was created, the sudden death of Mrs. Elliot. She also left Stephen no
money: she had none to leave. Chance threw him into the power of Mrs.
Failing. "Let things go on as they are," she thought. "I will take care
of this pretty little boy, and the ugly little boy can live with the
Silts. After my death--well, the papers will be found after my death,
and they can meet then. I like the idea of their mutual ignorance. It is
amusing."

He was then twelve. With a few brief intervals of school, he lived in
Wiltshire until he was driven out. Life had two distinct sides--the
drawing-room and the other. In the drawing-room people talked a good
deal, laughing as they talked. Being clever, they did not care for
animals: one man had never seen a hedgehog. In the other life people
talked and laughed separately, or even did neither. On the whole, in
spite of the wet and gamekeepers, this life was preferable. He knew
where he was. He glanced at the boy, or later at the man, and behaved
accordingly. There was no law--the policeman was negligible. Nothing
bound him but his own word, and he gave that sparingly.

It is impossible to be romantic when you have your heart's desire, and
such a boy disappointed Mrs. Failing greatly. His parents had met for
one brief embrace, had found one little interval between the power of
the rulers of this world and the power of death. He was the child of
poetry and of rebellion, and poetry should run in his veins. But he
lived too near the things he loved to seem poetical. Parted from them,
he might yet satisfy her, and stretch out his hands with a pagan's
yearning. As it was, he only rode her horses, and trespassed, and
bathed, and worked, for no obvious reason, upon her fields. Affection
she did not believe in, and made no attempt to mould him; and he, for
his part, was very content to harden untouched into a man. His parents
had given him excellent gifts--health, sturdy limbs, and a face not
ugly,--gifts that his habits confirmed. They had also given him a
cloudless spirit--the spirit of the seventeen days in which he was
created. But they had not given him the spirit of their sit years of
waiting, and love for one person was never to be the greatest thing he
knew.

"Philosophy" had postponed the quarrel between them. Incurious about his
personal origin, he had a certain interest in our eternal problems. The
interest never became a passion: it sprang out of his physical growth,
and was soon merged in it again. Or, as he put it himself, "I must get
fixed up before starting." He was soon fixed up as a materialist. Then
he tore up the sixpenny reprints, and never amused Mrs. Failing so much
again.

About the time he fixed himself up, he took to drink. He knew of no
reason against it. The instinct was in him, and it hurt nobody. Here, as
elsewhere, his motions were decided, and he passed at once from roaring
jollity to silence. For those who live on the fuddled borderland, who
crawl home by the railings and maunder repentance in the morning, he had
a biting contempt. A man must take his tumble and his headache. He was,
in fact, as little disgusting as is conceivable; and hitherto he had not
strained his constitution or his will. Nor did he get drunk as often as
Agnes suggested. The real quarrel gathered elsewhere.


Presentable people have run wild in their youth. But the hour comes when
they turn from their boorish company to higher things. This hour never
came for Stephen. Somewhat a bully by nature, he kept where his powers
would tell, and continued to quarrel and play with the men he had known
as boys. He prolonged their youth unduly. "They won't settle down," said
Mr. Wilbraham to his wife. "They're wanting things. It's the germ of
a Trades Union. I shall get rid of a few of the worst." Then Stephen
rushed up to Mrs. Failing and worried her. "It wasn't fair. So-and-so
was a good sort. He did his work. Keen about it? No. Why should he be?
Why should he be keen about somebody else's land? But keen enough. And
very keen on football." She laughed, and said a word about So-and-so
to Mr. Wilbraham. Mr. Wilbraham blazed up. "How could the farm go
on without discipline? How could there be discipline if Mr. Stephen
interfered? Mr. Stephen liked power. He spoke to the men like one of
themselves, and pretended it was all equality, but he took care to come
out top. Natural, of course, that, being a gentleman, he should. But
not natural for a gentleman to loiter all day with poor people and learn
their work, and put wrong notions into their heads, and carry their
newfangled grievances to Mrs. Failing. Which partly accounted for the
deficit on the past year." She rebuked Stephen. Then he lost his temper,
was rude to her, and insulted Mr. Wilbraham.

The worst days of Mr. Failing's rule seemed to be returning. And Stephen
had a practical experience, and also a taste for battle, that her
husband had never possessed. He drew up a list of grievances, some
absurd, others fundamental. No newspapers in the reading-room, you
could put a plate under the Thompsons' door, no level cricket-pitch,
no allotments and no time to work in them, Mrs. Wilbraham's knife-boy
underpaid. "Aren't you a little unwise?" she asked coldly. "I am more
bored than you think over the farm." She was wanting to correct the
proofs of the book and rewrite the prefatory memoir. In her irritation
she wrote to Agnes. Agnes replied sympathetically, and Mrs. Failing,
clever as she was, fell into the power of the younger woman. They
discussed him at first as a wretch of a boy; then he got drunk and
somehow it seemed more criminal. All that she needed now was a personal
grievance, which Agnes casually supplied. Though vindictive, she was
determined to treat him well, and thought with satisfaction of our
distant colonies. But he burst into an odd passion: he would sooner
starve than leave England. "Why?" she asked. "Are you in love?" He
picked up a lump of the chalk-they were by the arbour--and made no
answer. The vicar murmured, "It is not like going abroad--Greater
Britain--blood is thicker than water--" A lump of chalk broke her
drawing-room window on the Saturday.

Thus Stephen left Wiltshire, half-blackguard, half-martyr. Do not brand
him as a socialist. He had no quarrel with society, nor any particular
belief in people because they are poor. He only held the creed of "here
am I and there are you," and therefore class distinctions were trivial
things to him, and life no decorous scheme, but a personal combat or a
personal truce. For the same reason ancestry also was trivial, and a man
not the dearer because the same woman was mother to them both. Yet it
seemed worth while to go to Sawston with the news. Perhaps nothing would
come of it; perhaps friendly intercourse, and a home while he looked
around.

When they wronged him he walked quietly away. He never thought of
allotting the blame, nor or appealing to Ansell, who still sat brooding
in the side-garden. He only knew that educated people could be horrible,
and that a clean liver must never enter Dunwood House again. The air
seemed stuffy. He spat in the gutter. Was it yesterday he had lain in
the rifle-butts over Salisbury? Slightly aggrieved, he wondered why he
was not back there now. "I ought to have written first," he reflected.
"Here is my money gone. I cannot move. The Elliots have, as it were,
practically robbed me." That was the only grudge he retained against
them. Their suspicions and insults were to him as the curses of a tramp
whom he passed by the wayside. They were dirty people, not his sort. He
summed up the complicated tragedy as a "take in."

While Rickie was being carried upstairs, and while Ansell (had he known
it) was dashing about the streets for him, he lay under a railway arch
trying to settle his plans. He must pay back the friends who had given
him shillings and clothes. He thought of Flea, whose Sundays he was
spoiling--poor Flea, who ought to be in them now, shining before his
girl. "I daresay he'll be ashamed and not go to see her, and then she'll
take the other man." He was also very hungry. That worm Mrs. Elliot
would be through her lunch by now. Trying his braces round him, and
tearing up those old wet documents, he stepped forth to make money. A
villainous young brute he looked: his clothes were dirty, and he had
lost the spring of the morning. Touching the walls, frowning, talking to
himself at times, he slouched disconsolately northwards; no wonder that
some tawdry girls screamed at him, or that matrons averted their eyes
as they hurried to afternoon church. He wandered from one suburb to
another, till he was among people more villainous than himself, who
bought his tobacco from him and sold him food. Again the neighbourhood
"went up," and families, instead of sitting on their doorsteps, would
sit behind thick muslin curtains. Again it would "go down" into a more
avowed despair. Far into the night he wandered, until he came to a
solemn river majestic as a stream in hell. Therein were gathered
the waters of Central England--those that flow off Hindhead, off the
Chilterns, off Wiltshire north of the Plain. Therein they were made
intolerable ere they reached the sea. But the waters he had known
escaped. Their course lay southward into the Avon by forests and
beautiful fields, even swift, even pure, until they mirrored the tower
of Christchurch and greeted the ramparts of the Isle of Wight. Of these
he thought for a moment as he crossed the black river and entered the
heart of the modern world. Here he found employment. He was not hampered
by genteel traditions, and, as it was near quarter-day, managed to get
taken on at a furniture warehouse. He moved people from the suburbs
to London, from London to the suburbs, from one suburb to another. His
companions were hurried and querulous. In particular, he loathed
the foreman, a pious humbug who allowed no swearing, but indulged in
something far more degraded--the Cockney repartee. The London intellect,
so pert and shallow, like a stream that never reaches the ocean,
disgusted him almost as much as the London physique, which for all
its dexterity is not permanent, and seldom continues into the third
generation. His father, had he known it, had felt the same; for between
Mr. Elliot and the foreman the gulf was social, not spiritual: both
spent their lives in trying to be clever. And Tony Failing had once put
the thing into words: "There's no such thing as a Londoner. He's only a
country man on the road to sterility."

At the end of ten days he had saved scarcely anything. Once he passed
the bank where a hundred pounds lay ready for him, but it was still
inconvenient for him to take them. Then duty sent him to a suburb not
very far from Sawston. In the evening a man who was driving a trap asked
him to hold it, and by mistake tipped him a sovereign. Stephen called
after him; but the man had a woman with him and wanted to show off, and
though he had meant to tip a shilling, and could not afford that, he
shouted back that his sovereign was as good as any one's, and that if
Stephen did not think so he could do various things and go to various
places. On the action of this man much depends. Stephen changed the
sovereign into a postal order, and sent it off to the people at Cadford.
It did not pay them back, but it paid them something, and he felt that
his soul was free.

A few shillings remained in his pocket. They would have paid his fare
towards Wiltshire, a good county; but what should he do there? Who
would employ him? Today the journey did not seem worth while. "Tomorrow,
perhaps," he thought, and determined to spend the money on pleasure of
another kind. Two-pence went for a ride on an electric tram. From the
top he saw the sun descend--a disc with a dark red edge. The same sun
was descending over Salisbury intolerably bright. Out of the golden haze
the spire would be piercing, like a purple needle; then mists arose from
the Avon and the other streams. Lamps flickered, but in the outer purity
the villages were already slumbering. Salisbury is only a Gothic upstart
beside these. For generations they have come down to her to buy or to
worship, and have found in her the reasonable crisis of their lives;
but generations before she was built they were clinging to the soil, and
renewing it with sheep and dogs and men, who found the crisis of their
lives upon Stonehenge. The blood of these men ran in Stephen; the vigour
they had won for him was as yet untarnished; out on those downs they had
united with rough women to make the thing he spoke of as "himself"; the
last of them has rescued a woman of a different kind from streets and
houses such as these. As the sun descended he got off the tram with a
smile of expectation. A public-house lay opposite, and a boy in a dirty
uniform was already lighting its enormous lamp. His lips parted, and he
went in.

Two hours later, when Rickie and Herbert were going the rounds, a brick
came crashing at the study window. Herbert peered into the garden, and a
hooligan slipped by him into the house, wrecked the hall, lurched up the
stairs, fell against the banisters, balanced for a moment on his spine,
and slid over. Herbert called for the police. Rickie, who was upon the
landing, caught the man by the knees and saved his life.

"What is it?" cried Agnes, emerging.

"It's Stephen come back," was the answer. "Hullo, Stephen!"



XXXI

Hither had Rickie moved in ten days--from disgust to penitence, from
penitence to longing from a life of horror to a new life, in which he
still surprised himself by unexpected words. Hullo, Stephen! For the son
of his mother had come back, to forgive him, as she would have done, to
live with him, as she had planned.

"He's drunk this time," said Agnes wearily. She too had altered: the
scandal was ageing her, and Ansell came to the house daily.

"Hullo, Stephen!"

But Stephen was now insensible.

"Stephen, you live here--"

"Good gracious me!" interposed Herbert. "My advice is, that we all go to
bed. The less said the better while our nerves are in this state. Very
well, Rickie. Of course, Wonham sleeps the night if you wish." They
carried the drunken mass into the spare room. A mass of scandal it
seemed to one of them, a symbol of redemption to the other. Neither
acknowledged it a man, who would answer them back after a few hours'
rest.

"Ansell thought he would never forgive me," said Rickie. "For once he's
wrong."

"Come to bed now, I think." And as Rickie laid his hand on the sleeper's
hair, he added, "You won't do anything foolish, will you? You are still
in a morbid state. Your poor mother--Pardon me, dear boy; it is my turn
to speak out. You thought it was your father, and minded. It is your
mother. Surely you ought to mind more?"

"I have been too far back," said Rickie gently. "Ansell took me on a
journey that was even new to him. We got behind right and wrong, to a
place where only one thing matters--that the Beloved should rise from
the dead."

"But you won't do anything rash?"

"Why should I?"

"Remember poor Agnes," he stammered. "I--I am the first to acknowledge
that we might have pursued a different policy. But we are committed to
it now. It makes no difference whose son he is. I mean, he is the same
person. You and I and my sister stand or fall together. It was our
agreement from the first. I hope--No more of these distressing scenes
with her, there's a dear fellow. I assure you they make my heart bleed."

"Things will quiet down now."

"To bed now; I insist upon that much."

"Very well," said Rickie, and when they were in the passage, locked the
door from the outside. "We want no more muddles," he explained.

Mr. Pembroke was left examining the hall. The bust of Hermes was broken.
So was the pot of the palm. He could not go to bed without once more
sounding Rickie. "You'll do nothing rash," he called. "The notion of him
living here was, of course, a passing impulse. We three have adopted a
common policy."

"Now, you go away!" called a voice that was almost flippant. "I never
did belong to that great sect whose doctrine is that each one should
select--at least, I'm not going to belong to it any longer. Go away to
bed."

"A good night's rest is what you need," threatened Herbert, and retired,
not to find one for himself.

But Rickie slept. The guilt of months and the remorse of the last ten
days had alike departed. He had thought that his life was poisoned, and
lo! it was purified. He had cursed his mother, and Ansell had replied,
"You may be right, but you stand too near to settle. Step backwards.
Pretend that it happened to me. Do you want me to curse my mother?
Now, step forward and see whether anything has changed." Something had
changed. He had journeyed--as on rare occasions a man must--till he
stood behind right and wrong. On the banks of the grey torrent of life,
love is the only flower. A little way up the stream and a little way
down had Rickie glanced, and he knew that she whom he loved had risen
from the dead, and might rise again. "Come away--let them die out--let
them die out." Surely that dream was a vision! To-night also he hurried
to the window--to remember, with a smile, that Orion is not among the
stars of June.

"Let me die out. She will continue," he murmured, and in making plans
for Stephen's happiness, fell asleep.

Next morning after breakfast he announced that his brother must live
at Dunwood House. They were awed by the very moderation of his tone.
"There's nothing else to be done. Cadover's hopeless, and a boy of those
tendencies can't go drifting. There is also the question of a profession
for him, and his allowance."

"We have to thank Mr. Ansell for this," was all that Agnes could say;
and "I foresee disaster," was the contribution of Herbert.

"There's plenty of money about," Rickie continued. "Quite a man's-worth
too much. It has been one of our absurdities. Don't look so sad,
Herbert. I'm sorry for you people, but he's sure to let us down easy."
For his experience of drunkards and of Stephen was small.

He supposed that he had come without malice to renew the offer of ten
days ago.

"It is the end of Dunwood House."

Rickie nodded, and hoped not. Agnes, who was not looking well, began to
cry. "Oh, it is too bad," she complained, "when I've saved you from him
all these years." But he could not pity her, nor even sympathize with
her wounded delicacy. The time for such nonsense was over. He would take
his share of the blame: it was cant to assume it all.

Perhaps he was over-hard. He did not realize how large his share was,
nor how his very virtues were to blame for her deterioration. "If I had
a girl, I'd keep her in line," is not the remark of a fool nor of a cad.
Rickie had not kept his wife in line. He had shown her all the workings
of his soul, mistaking this for love; and in consequence she was the
worse woman after two years of marriage, and he, on this morning of
freedom, was harder upon her than he need have been.

The spare room bell rang. Herbert had a painful struggle between
curiosity and duty, for the bell for chapel was ringing also, and he
must go through the drizzle to school. He promised to come up in the
interval, Rickie, who had rapped his head that Sunday on the edge of
the table, was still forbidden to work. Before him a quiet morning lay.
Secure of his victory, he took the portrait of their mother in his hand
and walked leisurely upstairs. The bell continued to ring.

"See about his breakfast," he called to Agnes, who replied, "Very well."
The handle of the spare room door was moving slowly. "I'm coming," he
cried. The handle was still. He unlocked and entered, his heart full of
charity.

But within stood a man who probably owned the world.

Rickie scarcely knew him; last night he had seemed so colorless, no
negligible. In a few hours he had recaptured motion and passion and the
imprint of the sunlight and the wind. He stood, not consciously heroic,
with arms that dangled from broad stooping shoulders, and feet that
played with a hassock on the carpet. But his hair was beautiful against
the grey sky, and his eyes, recalling the sky unclouded, shot past the
intruder as if to some worthier vision. So intent was their gaze that
Rickie himself glanced backwards, only to see the neat passage and the
banisters at the top of the stairs. Then the lips beat together twice,
and out burst a torrent of amazing words.

"Add it all up, and let me know how much. I'd sooner have died. It never
took me that way before. I must have broken pounds' worth. If you'll not
tell the police, I promise you shan't lose, Mr. Elliot, I swear. But it
may be months before I send it. Everything is to be new. You've not to
be a penny out of pocket, do you see? Do let me go, this once again."

"What's the trouble?" asked Rickie, as if they had been friends for
years. "My dear man, we've other things to talk about. Gracious me, what
a fuss! If you'd smashed the whole house I wouldn't mind, so long as you
came back."

"I'd sooner have died," gulped Stephen.

"You did nearly! It was I who caught you. Never mind yesterday's rag.
What can you manage for breakfast?"

The face grew more angry and more puzzled. "Yesterday wasn't a rag," he
said without focusing his eyes. "I was drunk, but naturally meant it."

"Meant what?"

"To smash you. Bad liquor did what Mrs. Elliot couldn't. I've put myself
in the wrong. You've got me."

It was a poor beginning.

"As I have got you," said Rickie, controlling himself, "I want to have a
talk with you. There has been a ghastly mistake."

But Stephen, with a countryman's persistency, continued on his own line.
He meant to be civil, but Rickie went cold round the mouth. For he had
not even been angry with them. Until he was drunk, they had been dirty
people--not his sort. Then the trivial injury recurred, and he had
reeled to smash them as he passed. "And I will pay for everything," was
his refrain, with which the sighing of raindrops mingled. "You shan't
lose a penny, if only you let me free."

"You'll pay for my coffin if you talk like that any longer! Will you,
one, forgive my frightful behaviour; two, live with me?" For his only
hope was in a cheerful precision.

Stephen grew more agitated. He thought it was some trick.

"I was saying I made an unspeakable mistake. Ansell put me right, but it
was too late to find you. Don't think I got off easily. Ansell doesn't
spare one. And you've got to forgive me, to share my life, to share
my money.--I've brought you this photograph--I want it to be the first
thing you accept from me--you have the greater right--I know all the
story now. You know who it is?"

"Oh yes; but I don't want to drag all that in."

"It is only her wish if we live together. She was planning it when she
died."

"I can't follow--because--to share your life? Did you know I called here
last Sunday week?"

"Yes. But then I only knew half. I thought you were my father's son."

Stephen's anger and bewilderment were increasing. He stuttered.
"What--what's the odds if you did?"

"I hated my father," said Rickie. "I loved my mother." And never had the
phrases seemed so destitute of meaning.

"Last Sunday week," interrupted Stephen, his voice suddenly rising,
"I came to call on you. Not as this or that's son. Not to fall on your
neck. Nor to live here. Nor--damn your dirty little mind! I meant to
say I didn't come for money. Sorry. Sorry. I simply came as I was, and I
haven't altered since."

"Yes--yet our mother--for me she has risen from the dead since then--I
know I was wrong--"

"And where do I come in?" He kicked the hassock. "I haven't risen from
the dead. I haven't altered since last Sunday week. I'm--" He stuttered
again. He could not quite explain what he was. "The man towards
Andover--after all, he was having principles. But you've--" His voice
broke. "I mind it--I'm--I don't alter--blackguard one week--live here
the next--I keep to one or the other--you've hurt something most badly
in me that I didn't know was there."

"Don't let us talk," said Rickie. "It gets worse every minute. Simply
say you forgive me; shake hands, and have done with it."

"That I won't. That I couldn't. In fact, I don't know what you mean."

Then Rickie began a new appeal--not to pity, for now he was in no mood
to whimper. For all its pathos, there was something heroic in this
meeting. "I warn you to stop here with me, Stephen. No one else in the
world will look after you. As far as I know, you have never been really
unhappy yet or suffered, as you should do, from your faults. Last night
you nearly killed yourself with drink. Never mind why I'm willing to
cure you. I am willing, and I warn you to give me the chance. Forgive me
or not, as you choose. I care for other things more."

Stephen looked at him at last, faintly approving. The offer was
ridiculous, but it did treat him as a man.

"Let me tell you of a fault of mine, and how I was punished for it,"
continued Rickie. "Two years ago I behaved badly to you, up at the
Rings. No, even a few days before that. We went for a ride, and I
thought too much of other matters, and did not try to understand you.
Then came the Rings, and in the evening, when you called up to me most
kindly, I never answered. But the ride was the beginning. Ever since
then I have taken the world at second-hand. I have bothered less and
less to look it in the face--until not only you, but every one else has
turned unreal. Never Ansell: he kept away, and somehow saved himself.
But every one else. Do you remember in one of Tony Failing's books,
'Cast bitter bread upon the waters, and after many days it really does
come back to you'? This had been true of my life; it will be equally
true of a drunkard's, and I warn you to stop with me."

"I can't stop after that cheque," said Stephen more gently. "But I do
remember the ride. I was a bit bored myself."

Agnes, who had not been seeing to the breakfast, chose this moment to
call from the passage. "Of course he can't stop," she exclaimed. "For
better or worse, it's settled. We've none of us altered since last
Sunday week."

"There you're right, Mrs. Elliot!" he shouted, starting out of the
temperate past. "We haven't altered." With a rare flash of insight he
turned on Rickie. "I see your game. You don't care about ME drinking, or
to shake MY hand. It's some one else you want to cure--as it were,
that old photograph. You talk to me, but all the time you look at the
photograph." He snatched it up.

"I've my own ideas of good manners, and to look friends between the eyes
is one of them; and this"--he tore the photograph across "and this"--he
tore it again--"and these--" He flung the pieces at the man, who had
sunk into a chair. "For my part, I'm off."

Then Rickie was heroic no longer. Turning round in his chair, he covered
his face. The man was right. He did not love him, even as he had never
hated him. In either passion he had degraded him to be a symbol for the
vanished past. The man was right, and would have been lovable. He longed
to be back riding over those windy fields, to be back in those mystic
circles, beneath pure sky. Then they could have watched and helped and
taught each other, until the word was a reality, and the past not a torn
photograph, but Demeter the goddess rejoicing in the spring. Ah, if he
had seized those high opportunities! For they led to the highest of all,
the symbolic moment, which, if a man accepts, he has accepted life.

The voice of Agnes, which had lured him then ("For my sake," she had
whispered), pealed over him now in triumph. Abruptly it broke into sobs
that had the effect of rain. He started up. The anger had died out of
Stephen's face, not for a subtle reason but because here was a woman,
near him, and unhappy.

She tried to apologize, and brought on a fresh burst of tears. Something
had upset her. They heard her locking the door of her room. From that
moment their intercourse was changed.

"Why does she keep crying today?" mused Rickie, as if he spoke to some
mutual friend.

"I can make a guess," said Stephen, and his heavy face flushed.

"Did you insult her?" he asked feebly.

"But who's Gerald?"

Rickie raised his hand to his mouth.

"She looked at me as if she knew me, and then gasps 'Gerald,' and
started crying."

"Gerald is the name of some one she once knew."

"So I thought." There was a long silence, in which they could hear a
piteous gulping cough. "Where is he now?" asked Stephen.

"Dead."

"And then you--?"

Rickie nodded.

"Bad, this sort of thing."

"I didn't know of this particular thing. She acted as if she had
forgotten him. Perhaps she had, and you woke him up. There are queer
tricks in the world. She is overstrained. She has probably been plotting
ever since you burst in last night."

"Against me?"

"Yes."

Stephen stood irresolute. "I suppose you and she pulled together?" He
said at last.

"Get away from us, man! I mind losing you. Yet it's as well you don't
stop."

"Oh, THAT'S out of the question," said Stephen, brushing his cap.

"If you've guessed anything, I'd be obliged if you didn't mention it.
I've no right to ask, but I'd be obliged."

He nodded, and walked slowly along the landing and down the stairs.
Rickie accompanied him, and even opened the front door. It was as if
Agnes had absorbed the passion out of both of them. The suburb was now
wrapped in a cloud, not of its own making. Sigh after sigh passed along
its streets to break against dripping walls. The school, the houses
were hidden, and all civilization seemed in abeyance. Only the simplest
sounds, the simplest desires emerged. They agreed that this weather was
strange after such a sunset.

"That's a collie," said Stephen, listening.

"I wish you'd have some breakfast before starting."

"No food, thanks. But you know" He paused. "It's all been a muddle, and
I've no objection to your coming along with me."

The cloud descended lower.

"Come with me as a man," said Stephen, already out in the mist. "Not as
a brother; who cares what people did years back? We're alive together,
and the rest is cant. Here am I, Rickie, and there are you, a fair
wreck. They've no use for you here,--never had any, if the truth was
known,--and they've only made you beastly. This house, so to speak, has
the rot. It's common-sense that you should come."

"Stephen, wait a minute. What do you mean?"

"Wait's what we won't do," said Stephen at the gate.

"I must ask--"

He did wait for a minute, and sobs were heard, faint, hopeless,
vindictive. Then he trudged away, and Rickie soon lost his colour and
his form. But a voice persisted, saying, "Come, I do mean it. Come; I
will take care of you, I can manage you."

The words were kind; yet it was not for their sake that Rickie plunged
into the impalpable cloud. In the voice he had found a surer guarantee.
Habits and sex may change with the new generation, features may alter
with the play of a private passion, but a voice is apart from these. It
lies nearer to the racial essence and perhaps to the divine; it can, at
all events, overleap one grave.



XXXII

Mr. Pembroke did not receive a clear account of what had happened when
he returned for the interval. His sister--he told her frankly--was
concealing something from him. She could make no reply. Had she gone
mad, she wondered. Hitherto she had pretended to love her husband. Why
choose such a moment for the truth?

"But I understand Rickie's position," he told her. "It is an unbalanced
position, yet I understand it; I noted its approach while he was ill.
He imagines himself his brother's keeper. Therefore we must make
concessions. We must negotiate." The negotiations were still progressing
in November, the month during which this story draws to its close.

"I understand his position," he then told her. "It is both weak and
defiant. He is still with those Ansells. Read this letter, which thanks
me for his little stories. We sent them last month, you remember--such
of them as we could find. It seems that he fills up his time by writing:
he has already written a book."

She only gave him half her attention, for a beautiful wreath had just
arrived from the florist's. She was taking it up to the cemetery: today
her child had been dead a year.

"On the other hand, he has altered his will. Fortunately, he cannot
alter much. But I fear that what is not settled on you, will go. Should
I read what I wrote on this point, and also my minutes of the interview
with old Mr. Ansell, and the copy of my correspondence with Stephen
Wonham?"

But her fly was announced. While he put the wreath in for her, she ran
for a moment upstairs. A few tears had come to her eyes. A scandalous
divorce would have been more bearable than this withdrawal. People
asked, "Why did her husband leave her?" and the answer came, "Oh,
nothing particular; he only couldn't stand her; she lied and taught him
to lie; she kept him from the work that suited him, from his friends,
from his brother,--in a word, she tried to run him, which a man won't
pardon." A few tears; not many. To her, life never showed itself as a
classic drama, in which, by trying to advance our fortunes, we shatter
them. She had turned Stephen out of Wiltshire, and he fell like a
thunderbolt on Sawston and on herself. In trying to gain Mrs. Failing's
money she had probably lost money which would have been her own. But
irony is a subtle teacher, and she was not the woman to learn from such
lessons as these. Her suffering was more direct. Three men had wronged
her; therefore she hated them, and, if she could, would do them harm.

"These negotiations are quite useless," she told Herbert when she
came downstairs. "We had much better bide our time. Tell me just about
Stephen Wonham, though."

He drew her into the study again. "Wonham is or was in Scotland,
learning to farm with connections of the Ansells: I believe the money
is to go towards setting him up. Apparently he is a hard worker. He also
drinks!"

She nodded and smiled. "More than he did?"

"My informant, Mr. Tilliard--oh, I ought not to have mentioned his name.
He is one of the better sort of Rickie's Cambridge friends, and has been
dreadfully grieved at the collapse, but he does not want to be mixed up
in it. This autumn he was up in the Lowlands, close by, and very kindly
made a few unobtrusive inquiries for me. The man is becoming an habitual
drunkard."

She smiled again. Stephen had evoked her secret, and she hated him
more for that than for anything else that he had done. The poise of his
shoulders that morning--it was no more--had recalled Gerald.

If only she had not been so tired! He had reminded her of the greatest
thing she had known, and to her cloudy mind this seemed degradation. She
had turned to him as to her lover; with a look, which a man of his type
understood, she had asked for his pity; for one terrible moment she
had desired to be held in his arms. Even Herbert was surprised when she
said, "I'm glad he drinks. I hope he'll kill himself. A man like that
ought never to have been born."

"Perhaps the sins of the parents are visited on the children," said
Herbert, taking her to the carriage. "Yet it is not for us to decide."

"I feel sure he will be punished. What right has he--" She broke off.
What right had he to our common humanity? It was a hard lesson for
any one to learn. For Agnes it was impossible. Stephen was illicit,
abnormal, worse than a man diseased. Yet she had turned to him: he had
drawn out the truth.

"My dear, don't cry," said her brother, drawing up the windows. "I have
great hopes of Mr. Tilliard--the Silts have written--Mrs. Failing will
do what she can--"

As she drove to the cemetery, her bitterness turned against Ansell, who
had kept her husband alive in the days after Stephen's expulsion. If
he had not been there, Rickie would have renounced his mother and his
brother and all the outer world, troubling no one. The mystic, inherent
in him, would have prevailed. So Ansell himself had told her. And
Ansell, too, had sheltered the fugitives and given them money, and saved
them from the ludicrous checks that so often stop young men. But when
she reached the cemetery, and stood beside the tiny grave, all her
bitterness, all her hatred were turned against Rickie.

"But he'll come back in the end," she thought. "A wife has only to wait.
What are his friends beside me? They too will marry. I have only to
wait. His book, like all that he has done, will fail. His brother is
drinking himself away. Poor aimless Rickie! I have only to keep civil.
He will come back in the end."

She had moved, and found herself close to the grave of Gerald. The
flowers she had planted after his death were dead, and she had not liked
to renew them. There lay the athlete, and his dust was as the little
child's whom she had brought into the world with such hope, with such
pain.



XXXIII

That same day Rickie, feeling neither poor nor aimless, left the
Ansells' for a night's visit to Cadover. His aunt had invited him--why,
he could not think, nor could he think why he should refuse the
invitation. She could not annoy him now, and he was not vindictive. In
the dell near Madingley he had cried, "I hate no one," in his ignorance.
Now, with full knowledge, he hated no one again. The weather was
pleasant, the county attractive, and he was ready for a little change.

Maud and Stewart saw him off. Stephen, who was down for the holiday,
had been left with his chin on the luncheon table. He had wanted to come
also. Rickie pointed out that you cannot visit where you have broken the
windows. There was an argument--there generally was--and now the young
man had turned sulky.

"Let him do what he likes," said Ansell. "He knows more than we do. He
knows everything."

"Is he to get drunk?" Rickie asked.

"Most certainly."

"And to go where he isn't asked?"

Maud, though liking a little spirit in a man, declared this to be
impossible.

"Well, I wish you joy!" Rickie called, as the train moved away. "He
means mischief this evening. He told me piously that he felt it beating
up. Good-bye!"

"But we'll wait for you to pass," they cried. For the Salisbury train
always backed out of the station and then returned, and the Ansell
family, including Stewart, took an incredible pleasure in seeing it do
this.

The carriage was empty. Rickie settled himself down for his little
journey. First he looked at the coloured photographs. Then he read the
directions for obtaining luncheon-baskets, and felt the texture of the
cushions. Through the windows a signal-box interested him. Then he saw
the ugly little town that was now his home, and up its chief street the
Ansells' memorable facade. The spirit of a genial comedy dwelt there. It
was so absurd, so kindly. The house was divided against itself and yet
stood. Metaphysics, commerce, social aspirations--all lived together in
harmony. Mr. Ansell had done much, but one was tempted to believe in a
more capricious power--the power that abstains from "nipping." "One nips
or is nipped, and never knows beforehand," quoted Rickie, and opened the
poems of Shelley, a man less foolish than you supposed. How pleasant
it was to read! If business worried him, if Stephen was noisy or Ansell
perverse, there still remained this paradise of books. It seemed as
if he had read nothing for two years. Then the train stopped for the
shunting, and he heard protests from minor officials who were working on
the line. They complained that some one who didn't ought to, had mounted
on the footboard of the carriage. Stephen's face appeared, convulsed
with laughter. With the action of a swimmer he dived in through the open
window, and fell comfortably on Rickie's luggage and Rickie. He declared
it was the finest joke ever known. Rickie was not so sure. "You'll be
run over next," he said. "What did you do that for?"

"I'm coming with you," he giggled, rolling all that he could on to the
dusty floor.

"Now, Stephen, this is too bad. Get up. We went into the whole question
yesterday."

"I know; and I settled we wouldn't go into it again, spoiling my
holiday."

"Well, it's execrable taste."

Now he was waving to the Ansells, and showing them a piece of soap:
it was all his luggage, and even that he abandoned, for he flung it at
Stewart's lofty brow.

"I can't think what you've done it for. You know how strongly I felt."

Stephen replied that he should stop in the village; meet Rickie at the
lodge gates; that kind of thing.

"It's execrable taste," he repeated, trying to keep grave.

"Well, you did all you could," he exclaimed with sudden sympathy.
"Leaving me talking to old Ansell, you might have thought you'd got your
way. I've as much taste as most chaps, but, hang it! your aunt isn't the
German Emperor. She doesn't own Wiltshire."

"You ass!" sputtered Rickie, who had taken to laugh at nonsense again.

"No, she isn't," he repeated, blowing a kiss out of the window to
maidens. "Why, we started for Wiltshire on the wet morning!"

"When Stewart found us at Sawston railway station?" He smiled happily.
"I never thought we should pull through."

"Well, we DIDN'T. We never did what we meant. It's nonsense that I
couldn't have managed you alone. I've a notion. Slip out after your
dinner this evening, and we'll get thundering tight together."

"I've a notion I won't."

"It'd do you no end of good. You'll get to know people--shepherds,
carters--" He waved his arms vaguely, indicating democracy. "Then you'll
sing."

"And then?"

"Plop."

"Precisely."

"But I'll catch you," promised Stephen. "We shall carry you up the hill
to bed. In the morning you wake, have your row with old Em'ly, she kicks
you out, we meet--we'll meet at the Rings!" He danced up and down the
carriage. Some one in the next carriage punched at the partition, and
when this happens, all lads with mettle know that they must punch the
partition back.

"Thank you. I've a notion I won't," said Rickie when the noise had
subsided--subsided for a moment only, for the following conversation
took place to an accompaniment of dust and bangs. "Except as regards the
Rings. We will meet there."

"Then I'll get tight by myself."

"No, you won't."

"Yes, I will. I swore to do something special this evening. I feel like
it."

"In that case, I get out at the next station." He was laughing, but
quite determined. Stephen had grown too dictatorial of late. The Ansells
spoilt him. "It's bad enough having you there at all. Having you there
drunk is impossible. I'd sooner not visit my aunt than think, when I sat
with her, that you're down in the village teaching her labourers to be
as beastly as yourself. Go if you will. But not with me."

"Why shouldn't I have a good time while I'm young, if I don't harm any
one?" said Stephen defiantly.

"Need we discuss self."

"Oh, I can stop myself any minute I choose. I just say 'I won't' to you
or any other fool, and I don't."

Rickie knew that the boast was true. He continued, "There is also a
thing called Morality. You may learn in the Bible, and also from the
Greeks, that your body is a temple."

"So you said in your longest letter."

"Probably I wrote like a prig, for the reason that I have never been
tempted in this way; but surely it is wrong that your body should escape
you."

"I don't follow," he retorted, punching.

"It isn't right, even for a little time, to forget that you exist."

"I suppose you've never been tempted to go to sleep?"

Just then the train passed through a coppice in which the grey
undergrowth looked no more alive than firewood. Yet every twig in it
was waiting for the spring. Rickie knew that the analogy was false, but
argument confused him, and he gave up this line of attack also.

"Do be more careful over life. If your body escapes you in one thing,
why not in more? A man will have other temptations."

"You mean women," said Stephen quietly, pausing for a moment in this
game. "But that's absolutely different. That would be harming some one
else."

"Is that the only thing that keeps you straight?"

"What else should?" And he looked not into Rickie, but past him, with
the wondering eyes of a child. Rickie nodded, and referred himself to
the window.

He observed that the country was smoother and more plastic. The woods
had gone, and under a pale-blue sky long contours of earth were flowing,
and merging, rising a little to bear some coronal of beeches, parting a
little to disclose some green valley, where cottages stood under elms
or beside translucent waters. It was Wiltshire at last. The train had
entered the chalk. At last it slackened at a wayside platform. Without
speaking he opened the door.

"What's that for?"

"To go back."

Stephen had forgotten the threat. He said that this was not playing the
game.

"Surely!"

"I can't have you going back."

"Promise to behave decently then."

He was seized and pulled away from the door.

"We change at Salisbury," he remarked. "There is an hour to wait. You
will find me troublesome."

"It isn't fair," exploded Stephen. "It's a lowdown trick. How can I let
you go back?"

"Promise, then."

"Oh, yes, yes, yes. Y.M.C.A. But for this occasion only."

"No, no. For the rest of your holiday."

"Yes, yes. Very well. I promise."

"For the rest of your life?"

Somehow it pleased him that Stephen should bang him crossly with his
elbow and say, "No. Get out. You've gone too far." So had the train.
The porter at the end of the wayside platform slammed the door, and they
proceeded toward Salisbury through the slowly modulating downs. Rickie
pretended to read. Over the book he watched his brother's face, and
wondered how bad temper could be consistent with a mind so radiant. In
spite of his obstinacy and conceit, Stephen was an easy person to live
with. He never fidgeted or nursed hidden grievances, or indulged in a
shoddy pride. Though he spent Rickie's money as slowly as he could,
he asked for it without apology: "You must put it down against me," he
would say. In time--it was still very vague--he would rent or purchase
a farm. There is no formula in which we may sum up decent people. So
Ansell had preached, and had of course proceeded to offer a formula:
"They must be serious, they must be truthful." Serious not in the sense
of glum; but they must be convinced that our life is a state of some
importance, and our earth not a place to beat time on. Of so much
Stephen was convinced: he showed it in his work, in his play, in his
self-respect, and above all--though the fact is hard to face-in his
sacred passion for alcohol. Drink, today, is an unlovely thing. Between
us and the heights of Cithaeron the river of sin now flows. Yet the
cries still call from the mountain, and granted a man has responded to
them, it is better he respond with the candour of the Greek.

"I shall stop at the Thompsons' now," said the disappointed reveller.
"Prayers."

Rickie did not press his triumph, but it was a happy moment, partly
because of the triumph, partly because he was sure that his brother must
care for him. Stephen was too selfish to give up any pleasure without
grave reasons. He was certain that he had been right to disentangle
himself from Sawston, and to ignore the threats and tears that still
tempted him to return. Here there was real work for him to do. Moreover,
though he sought no reward, it had come. His health was better, his
brain sound, his life washed clean, not by the waters of sentiment,
but by the efforts of a fellow-man. Stephen was man first, brother
afterwards. Herein lay his brutality and also his virtue. "Look me in
the face. Don't hang on me clothes that don't belong--as you did on your
wife, giving her saint's robes, whereas she was simply a woman of her
own sort, who needed careful watching. Tear up the photographs. Here
am I, and there are you. The rest is cant." The rest was not cant,
and perhaps Stephen would confess as much in time. But Rickie needed a
tonic, and a man, not a brother, must hold it to his lips.

"I see the old spire," he called, and then added, "I don't mind seeing
it again."

"No one does, as far as I know. People have come from the other side of
the world to see it again."

"Pious people. But I don't hold with bishops." He was young enough to
be uneasy. The cathedral, a fount of superstition, must find no place in
his life. At the age of twenty he had settled things.

"I've got my own philosophy," he once told Ansell, "and I don't care a
straw about yours." Ansell's mirth had annoyed him not a little. And
it was strange that one so settled should feel his heart leap up at
the sight of an old spire. "I regard it as a public building," he told
Rickie, who agreed. "It's useful, too, as a landmark." His attitude
today was defensive. It was part of a subtle change that Rickie had
noted in him since his return from Scotland. His face gave hints of a
new maturity. "You can see the old spire from the Ridgeway," he said,
suddenly laying a hand on Rickie's knee, "before rain as clearly as any
telegraph post."

"How far is the Ridgeway?"

"Seventeen miles."

"Which direction?"

"North, naturally. North again from that you see Devizes, the vale of
Pewsey, and the other downs. Also towards Bath. It is something of a
view. You ought to get on the Ridgeway."

"I shouldn't have time for that."

"Or Beacon Hill. Or let's do Stonehenge."

"If it's fine, I suggest the Rings."

"It will be fine." Then he murmured the names of villages.

"I wish you could live here," said Rickie kindly. "I believe you love
these particular acres more than the whole world."

Stephen replied that this was not the case: he was only used to them.
He wished they were driving out, instead of waiting for the Cadchurch
train.

They had advanced into Salisbury, and the cathedral, a public building,
was grey against a tender sky. Rickie suggested that, while waiting
for the train, they should visit it. He spoke of the incomparable north
porch. "I've never been inside it, and I never will. Sorry to shock you,
Rickie, but I must tell you plainly. I'm an atheist. I don't believe in
anything."

"I do," said Rickie.

"When a man dies, it's as if he's never been," he asserted. The train
drew up in Salisbury station. Here a little incident took place which
caused them to alter their plans.

They found outside the station a trap driven by a small boy, who had
come in from Cadford to fetch some wire-netting. "That'll do us," said
Stephen, and called to the boy, "If I pay your railway-ticket back, and
if I give you sixpence as well, will you let us drive back in the
trap?" The boy said no. "It will be all right," said Rickie. "I am Mrs.
Failing's nephew." The boy shook his head. "And you know Mr. Wonham?"
The boy couldn't say he didn't. "Then what's your objection? Why? What
is it? Why not?" But Stephen leant against the time-tables and spoke of
other matters.

Presently the boy said, "Did you say you'd pay my railway-ticket back,
Mr. Wonham?"

"Yes," said a bystander. "Didn't you hear him?"

"I heard him right enough."

Now Stephen laid his hand on the splash-board, saying, "What I want,
though, is this trap here of yours, see, to drive in back myself;" and
as he spoke the bystander followed him in canon, "What he wants, though,
is that there trap of yours, see, to drive hisself back in."

"I've no objection," said the boy, as if deeply offended. For a time he
sat motionless, and then got down, remarking, "I won't rob you of your
sixpence."

"Silly little fool," snapped Rickie, as they drove through the town.

Stephen looked surprised. "What's wrong with the boy? He had to think it
over. No one had asked him to do such a thing before. Next time he'd let
us have the trap quick enough."

"Not if he had driven in for a cabbage instead of wire-netting."

"He never would drive in for a cabbage."

Rickie shuffled his feet. But his irritation passed. He saw that the
little incident had been a quiet challenge to the civilization that he
had known. "Organize." "Systematize." "Fill up every moment," "Induce
esprit de corps." He reviewed the watchwords of the last two years,
and found that they ignored personal contest, personal truces, personal
love. By following them Sawston School had lost its quiet usefulness
and become a frothy sea, wherein plunged Dunwood House, that unnecessary
ship. Humbled, he turned to Stephen and said, "No, you're right. Nothing
is wrong with the boy. He was honestly thinking it out." But Stephen had
forgotten the incident, or else he was not inclined to talk about it.
His assertive fit was over.

The direct road from Salisbury to Cadover is extremely dull. The
city--which God intended to keep by the river; did she not move there,
being thirsty, in the reign of William Rufus?--the city had strayed out
of her own plain, climbed up her slopes, and tumbled over them in ugly
cataracts of brick. The cataracts are still short, and doubtless they
meet or create some commercial need. But instead of looking towards
the cathedral, as all the city should, they look outwards at a pagan
entrenchment, as the city should not. They neglect the poise of the
earth, and the sentiments she has decreed. They are the modern spirit.

Through them the road descends into an unobtrusive country where,
nevertheless, the power of the earth grows stronger. Streams do divide.
Distances do still exist. It is easier to know the men in your valley
than those who live in the next, across a waste of down. It is easier to
know men well. The country is not paradise, and can show the vices that
grieve a good man everywhere. But there is room in it, and leisure.

"I suppose," said Rickie as the twilight fell, "this kind of thing is
going on all over England." Perhaps he meant that towns are after all
excrescences, grey fluxions, where men, hurrying to find one another,
have lost themselves. But he got no response, and expected none. Turning
round in his seat, he watched the winter sun slide out of a quiet sky.
The horizon was primrose, and the earth against it gave momentary hints
of purple. All faded: no pageant would conclude the gracious day, and
when he turned eastward the night was already established.

"Those verlands--" said Stephen, scarcely above his breath.

"What are verlands?"

He pointed at the dusk, and said, "Our name for a kind of field." Then
he drove his whip into its socket, and seemed to swallow something.
Rickie, straining his eyes for verlands, could only see a tumbling
wilderness of brown.

"Are there many local words?"

"There have been."

"I suppose they die out."

The conversation turned curiously. In the tone of one who replies, he
said, "I expect that some time or other I shall marry."

"I expect you will," said Rickie, and wondered a little why the reply
seemed not abrupt. "Would we see the Rings in the daytime from here?"

"(We do see them.) But Mrs. Failing once said no decent woman would have
me."

"Did you agree to that?"

"Drive a little, will you?"

The horse went slowly forward into the wilderness, that turned from
brown to black. Then a luminous glimmer surrounded them, and the air
grew cooler: the road was descending between parapets of chalk.

"But, Rickie, mightn't I find a girl--naturally not refined--and be
happy with her in my own way? I would tell her straight I was nothing
much--faithful, of course, but that she should never have all my
thoughts. Out of no disrespect to her, but because all one's thoughts
can't belong to any single person."

While he spoke even the road vanished, and invisible water came gurgling
through the wheel-spokes. The horse had chosen the ford. "You can't own
people. At least a fellow can't. It may be different for a poet. (Let
the horse drink.) And I want to marry some one, and don't yet know who
she is, which a poet again will tell you is disgusting. Does it disgust
you? Being nothing much, surely I'd better go gently. For it's something
rather outside that makes one marry, if you follow me: not exactly
oneself. (Don't hurry the horse.) We want to marry, and yet--I can't
explain. I fancy I'll go wading: this is our stream."

Romantic love is greater than this. There are men and women--we know it
from history--who have been born into the world for each other, and for
no one else, who have accomplished the longest journey locked in each
other's arms. But romantic love is also the code of modern morals, and,
for this reason, popular. Eternal union, eternal ownership--these are
tempting baits for the average man. He swallows them, will not confess
his mistake, and--perhaps to cover it--cries "dirty cynic" at such a man
as Stephen.

Rickie watched the black earth unite to the black sky. But the sky
overhead grew clearer, and in it twinkled the Plough and the central
stars. He thought of his brother's future and of his own past, and of
how much truth might lie in that antithesis of Ansell's: "A man wants to
love mankind, a woman wants to love one man." At all events, he and his
wife had illustrated it, and perhaps the conflict, so tragic in their
own case, was elsewhere the salt of the world. Meanwhile Stephen called
from the water for matches: there was some trick with paper which Mr.
Failing had showed him, and which he would show Rickie now, instead of
talking nonsense. Bending down, he illuminated the dimpled surface of
the ford. "Quite a current." he said, and his face flickered out in the
darkness. "Yes, give me the loose paper, quick! Crumple it into a ball."

Rickie obeyed, though intent on the transfigured face. He believed
that a new spirit dwelt there, expelling the crudities of youth. He
saw steadier eyes, and the sign of manhood set like a bar of gold upon
steadier lips. Some faces are knit by beauty, or by intellect, or by a
great passion: had Stephen's waited for the touch of the years?

But they played as boys who continued the nonsense of the railway
carriage. The paper caught fire from the match, and spread into a
rose of flame. "Now gently with me," said Stephen, and they laid it
flowerlike on the stream. Gravel and tremulous weeds leapt into sight,
and then the flower sailed into deep water, and up leapt the two arches
of a bridge. "It'll strike!" they cried; "no, it won't; it's chosen the
left," and one arch became a fairy tunnel, dropping diamonds. Then it
vanished for Rickie; but Stephen, who knelt in the water, declared that
it was still afloat, far through the arch, burning as if it would burn
forever.


XXXIV

The carriage that Mrs. Failing had sent to meet her nephew returned from
Cadchurch station empty. She was preparing for a solitary dinner when
he somehow arrived, full of apologies, but more sedate than she had
expected. She cut his explanations short. "Never mind how you got here.
You are here, and I am quite pleased to see you." He changed his clothes
and they proceeded to the dining-room.

There was a bright fire, but the curtains were not drawn. Mr. Failing
had believed that windows with the night behind are more beautiful than
any pictures, and his widow had kept to the custom. It was brave of her
to persevere, lumps of chalk having come out of the night last June. For
some obscure reason--not so obscure to Rickie--she had preserved them
as mementoes of an episode. Seeing them in a row on the mantelpiece,
he expected that their first topic would be Stephen. But they never
mentioned him, though he was latent in all that they said.

It was of Mr. Failing that they spoke. The Essays had been a success.
She was really pleased. The book was brought in at her request, and
between the courses she read it aloud to her nephew, in her soft yet
unsympathetic voice. Then she sent for the press notices--after all
no one despises them--and read their comments on her introduction. She
wielded a graceful pen, was apt, adequate, suggestive, indispensable,
unnecessary. So the meal passed pleasantly away, for no one could so
well combine the formal with the unconventional, and it only seemed
charming when papers littered her stately table.

"My man wrote very nicely," she observed. "Now, you read me something
out of him that you like. Read 'The True Patriot.'"

He took the book and found: "Let us love one another. Let our children,
physical and spiritual, love one another. It is all that we can do.
Perhaps the earth will neglect our love. Perhaps she will confirm it,
and suffer some rallying-point, spire, mound, for the new generations to
cherish."

"He wrote that when he was young. Later on he doubted whether we had
better love one another, or whether the earth will confirm anything. He
died a most unhappy man."

He could not help saying, "Not knowing that the earth had confirmed
him."

"Has she? It is quite possible. We meet so seldom in these days, she and
I. Do you see much of the earth?"

"A little."

"Do you expect that she will confirm you?"

"It is quite possible."

"Beware of her, Rickie, I think."

"I think not."

"Beware of her, surely. Going back to her really is going back--throwing
away the artificiality which (though you young people won't confess it)
is the only good thing in life. Don't pretend you are simple. Once I
pretended. Don't pretend that you care for anything but for clever talk
such as this, and for books."

"The talk," said Leighton afterwards, "certainly was clever. But it
meant something, all the same." He heard no more, for his mistress told
him to retire.

"And my nephew, this being so, make up your quarrel with your wife." She
stretched out her hand to him with real feeling. "It is easier now than
it will be later. Poor lady, she has written to me foolishly and often,
but, on the whole, I side with her against you. She would grant you all
that you fought for--all the people, all the theories. I have it, in her
writing, that she will never interfere with your life again."

"She cannot help interfering," said Rickie, with his eyes on the black
windows. "She despises me. Besides, I do not love her."

"I know, my dear. Nor she you. I am not being sentimental. I say
once more, beware of the earth. We are conventional people, and
conventions--if you will but see it--are majestic in their way, and
will claim us in the end. We do not live for great passions or for great
memories, or for anything great."

He threw up his head. "We do."

"Now listen to me. I am serious and friendly tonight, as you must have
observed. I have asked you here partly to amuse myself--you belong to
my March Past--but also to give you good advice. There has been a
volcano--a phenomenon which I too once greatly admired. The eruption is
over. Let the conventions do their work now, and clear the rubbish away.
My age is fifty-nine, and I tell you solemnly that the important things
in life are little things, and that people are not important at all. Go
back to your wife."

He looked at her, and was filled with pity. He knew that he would never
be frightened of her again. Only because she was serious and friendly
did he trouble himself to reply. "There is one little fact I should
like to tell you, as confuting your theory. The idea of a story--a long
story--had been in my head for a year. As a dream to amuse myself--the
kind of amusement you would recommend for the future. I should have had
time to write it, but the people round me coloured my life, and so it
never seemed worth while. For the story is not likely to pay. Then came
the volcano. A few days after it was over I lay in bed looking out upon
a world of rubbish. Two men I know--one intellectual, the other very
much the reverse--burst into the room. They said, 'What happened to
your short stories? They weren't good, but where are they? Why have you
stopped writing? Why haven't you been to Italy? You must write. You
must go. Because to write, to go, is you.' Well, I have written, and
yesterday we sent the long story out on its rounds. The men do not like
it, for different reasons. But it mattered very much to them that I
should write it, and so it got written. As I told you, this is only one
fact; other facts, I trust, have happened in the last five months. But
I mention it to prove that people are important, and therefore, however
much it inconveniences my wife, I will not go back to her."

"And Italy?" asked Mrs. Failing.

This question he avoided. Italy must wait. Now that he had the time, he
had not the money.

"Or what is the long story about, then?"

"About a man and a woman who meet and are happy."

"Somewhat of a tour de force, I conclude."

He frowned. "In literature we needn't intrude our own limitations.
I'm not so silly as to think that all marriages turn out like mine. My
character is to blame for our catastrophe, not marriage."

"My dear, I too have married; marriage is to blame."

But here again he seemed to know better.

"Well," she said, leaving the table and moving with her dessert to the
mantelpiece, "so you are abandoning marriage and taking to literature.
And are happy."

"Yes."

"Because, as we used to say at Cambridge, the cow is there. The world is
real again. This is a room, that a window, outside is the night."

"Go on."

He pointed to the floor. "The day is straight below, shining through
other windows into other rooms."

"You are very odd," she said after a pause, "and I do not like you at
all. There you sit, eating my biscuits, and all the time you know that
the earth is round. Who taught you? I am going to bed now, and all the
night, you tell me, you and I and the biscuits go plunging eastwards,
until we reach the sun. But breakfast will be at nine as usual.
Good-night."

She rang the bell twice, and her maid came with her candle and her
walking-stick: it was her habit of late to go to her room as soon as
dinner was over, for she had no one to sit up with. Rickie was impressed
by her loneliness, and also by the mixture in her of insight and
obtuseness. She was so quick, so clear-headed, so imaginative even.
But all the same, she had forgotten what people were like. Finding life
dull, she had dropped lies into it, as a chemist drops a new element
into a solution, hoping that life would thereby sparkle or turn some
beautiful colour. She loved to mislead others, and in the end her
private view of false and true was obscured, and she misled herself. How
she must have enjoyed their errors over Stephen! But her own error had
been greater, inasmuch as it was spiritual entirely.

Leighton came in with some coffee. Feeling it unnecessary to light the
drawing-room lamp for one small young man, he persuaded Rickie to say he
preferred the dining-room. So Rickie sat down by the fire playing with
one of the lumps of chalk. His thoughts went back to the ford, from
which they had scarcely wandered. Still he heard the horse in the
dark drinking, still he saw the mystic rose, and the tunnel dropping
diamonds. He had driven away alone, believing the earth had confirmed
him. He stood behind things at last, and knew that conventions are not
majestic, and that they will not claim us in the end.

As he mused, the chalk slipped from his fingers, and fell on the
coffee-cup, which broke. The china, said Leighton, was expensive. He
believed it was impossible to match it now. Each cup was different. It
was a harlequin set. The saucer, without the cup, was therefore useless.
Would Mr. Elliot please explain to Mrs. Failing how it happened.

Rickie promised he would explain.

He had left Stephen preparing to bathe, and had heard him working
up-stream like an animal, splashing in the shallows, breathing heavily
as he swam the pools; at times reeds snapped, or clods of earth were
pulled in. By the fire he remembered it was again November. "Should you
like a walk?" he asked Leighton, and told him who stopped in the village
tonight. Leighton was pleased. At nine o'clock the two young men left
the house, under a sky that was still only bright in the zenith. "It
will rain tomorrow," Leighton said.

"My brother says, fine tomorrow."

"Fine tomorrow," Leighton echoed.

"Now which do you mean?" asked Rickie, laughing.

Since the plumes of the fir-trees touched over the drive, only a very
little light penetrated. It was clearer outside the lodge gate, and
bubbles of air, which Wiltshire seemed to have travelled from an immense
distance, broke gently and separately on his face. They paused on the
bridge. He asked whether the little fish and the bright green weeds were
here now as well as in the summer. The footman had not noticed. Over the
bridge they came to the cross-roads, of which one led to Salisbury and
the other up through the string of villages to the railway station.
The road in front was only the Roman road, the one that went on to the
downs. Turning to the left, they were in Cadford.

"He will be with the Thompsons," said Rickie, looking up at dark eaves.
"Perhaps he's in bed already."

"Perhaps he will be at The Antelope."

"No. Tonight he is with the Thompsons."

"With the Thompsons." After a dozen paces he said, "The Thompsons have
gone away."

"Where? Why?"

"They were turned out by Mr. Wilbraham on account of our broken
windows."

"Are you sure?"

"Five families were turned out."

"That's bad for Stephen," said Rickie, after a pause. "He was looking
forward--oh, it's monstrous in any case!"

"But the Thompsons have gone to London," said Leighton. "Why, that
family--they say it's been in the valley hundreds of years, and never
got beyond shepherding. To various parts of London."

"Let us try The Antelope, then."

"Let us try The Antelope."

The inn lay up in the village. Rickie hastened his pace. This tyranny
was monstrous. Some men of the age of undergraduates had broken windows,
and therefore they and their families were to be ruined. The fools who
govern us find it easier to be severe. It saves them trouble to say,
"The innocent must suffer with the guilty." It even gives them a thrill
of pride. Against all this wicked nonsense, against the Wilbrahams and
Pembrokes who try to rule our world Stephen would fight till he died.
Stephen was a hero. He was a law to himself, and rightly. He was great
enough to despise our small moralities. He was attaining love. This
evening Rickie caught Ansell's enthusiasm, and felt it worth while to
sacrifice everything for such a man.

"The Antelope," said Leighton. "Those lights under the greatest elm."

"Would you please ask if he's there, and if he'd come for a turn with
me. I don't think I'll go in."

Leighton opened the door. They saw a little room, blue with
tobacco-smoke. Flanking the fire were deep settles hiding all but the
legs of the men who lounged in them. Between the settles stood a table,
covered with mugs and glasses. The scene was picturesque--fairer than
the cutglass palaces of the town.

"Oh yes, he's there," he called, and after a moment's hesitation came
out.

"Would he come?"

"No. I shouldn't say so," replied Leighton, with a furtive glance. He
knew that Rickie was a milksop. "First night, you know, sir, among old
friends."

"Yes, I know," said Rickie. "But he might like a turn down the village.
It looks stuffy inside there, and poor fun probably to watch others
drinking."

Leighton shut the door.

"What was that he called after you?"

"Oh, nothing. A man when he's drunk--he says the worst he's ever heard.
At least, so they say."

"A man when he's drunk?"

"Yes, Sir."

"But Stephen isn't drinking?"

"No, no."

"He couldn't be. If he broke a promise--I don't pretend he's a saint. I
don't want him one. But it isn't in him to break a promise."

"Yes, sir; I understand."

"In the train he promised me not to drink--nothing theatrical: just a
promise for these few days."

"No, sir." "'No, sir,'" stamped Rickie. "'Yes! no! yes!' Can't you speak
out? Is he drunk or isn't he?"

Leighton, justly exasperated, cried, "He can't stand, and I've told you
so again and again."

"Stephen!" shouted Rickie, darting up the steps. Heat and the smell of
beer awaited him, and he spoke more furiously than he had intended. "Is
there any one here who's sober?" he cried. The landlord looked over
the bar angrily, and asked him what he meant. He pointed to the deep
settles. "Inside there he's drunk. Tell him he's broken his word, and I
will not go with him to the Rings."

"Very well. You won't go with him to the Rings," said the landlord,
stepping forward and slamming the door in his face.

In the room he was only angry, but out in the cool air he remembered
that Stephen was a law to himself. He had chosen to break his word, and
would break it again. Nothing else bound him. To yield to temptation is
not fatal for most of us. But it was the end of everything for a hero.

"He's suddenly ruined!" he cried, not yet remembering himself. For a
little he stood by the elm-tree, clutching the ridges of its bark. Even
so would he wrestle tomorrow, and Stephen, imperturbable, reply, "My
body is my own." Or worse still, he might wrestle with a pliant Stephen
who promised him glibly again. While he prayed for a miracle to convert
his brother, it struck him that he must pray for himself. For he, too,
was ruined.

"Why, what's the matter?" asked Leighton. "Stephen's only being with
friends. Mr. Elliot, sir, don't break down. Nothing's happened bad. No
one's died yet, or even hurt themselves." Ever kind, he took hold of
Rickie's arm, and, pitying such a nervous fellow, set out with him for
home. The shoulders of Orion rose behind them over the topmost boughs of
the elm. From the bridge the whole constellation was visible, and Rickie
said, "May God receive me and pardon me for trusting the earth."

"But, Mr. Elliot, what have you done that's wrong?"

"Gone bankrupt, Leighton, for the second time. Pretended again that
people were real. May God have mercy on me!"

Leighton dropped his arm. Though he did not understand, a chill of
disgust passed over him, and he said, "I will go back to The Antelope. I
will help them put Stephen to bed."

"Do. I will wait for you here." Then he leant against the parapet and
prayed passionately, for he knew that the conventions would claim him
soon. God was beyond them, but ah, how far beyond, and to be reached
after what degradation! At the end of this childish detour his wife
awaited him, not less surely because she was only his wife in name. He
was too weak. Books and friends were not enough. Little by little she
would claim him and corrupt him and make him what he had been; and the
woman he loved would die out, in drunkenness, in debauchery, and her
strength would be dissipated by a man, her beauty defiled in a man. She
would not continue. That mystic rose and the face it illumined meant
nothing. The stream--he was above it now--meant nothing, though it
burst from the pure turf and ran for ever to the sea. The bather, the
shoulders of Orion-they all meant nothing, and were going nowhere. The
whole affair was a ridiculous dream.

Leighton returned, saying, "Haven't you seen Stephen? They say he
followed us: he can still walk: I told you he wasn't so bad."

"I don't think he passed me. Ought one to look?" He wandered a little
along the Roman road. Again nothing mattered. At the level-crossing he
leant on the gate to watch a slow goods train pass. In the glare of the
engine he saw that his brother had come this way, perhaps through some
sodden memory of the Rings, and now lay drunk over the rails. Wearily
he did a man's duty. There was time to raise him up and push him into
safety. It is also a man's duty to save his own life, and therefore he
tried. The train went over his knees. He died up in Cadover, whispering,
"You have been right," to Mrs. Failing.

She wrote of him to Mrs. Lewin afterwards as "one who has failed in
all he undertook; one of the thousands whose dust returns to the dust,
accomplishing nothing in the interval. Agnes and I buried him to the
sound of our cracked bell, and pretended that he had once been alive.
The other, who was always honest, kept away."



XXXV

From the window they looked over a sober valley, whose sides were
not too sloping to be ploughed, and whose trend was followed by a
grass-grown track. It was late on Sunday afternoon, and the valley was
deserted except for one labourer, who was coasting slowly downward on
a rosy bicycle. The air was very quiet. A jay screamed up in the woods
behind, but the ring-doves, who roost early, were already silent.
Since the window opened westward, the room was flooded with light, and
Stephen, finding it hot, was working in his shirtsleeves.

"You guarantee they'll sell?" he asked, with a pen between his teeth. He
was tidying up a pile of manuscripts.

"I guarantee that the world will be the gainer," said Mr. Pembroke,
now a clergyman, who sat beside him at the table with an expression of
refined disapproval on his face.

"I'd got the idea that the long story had its points, but that these
shorter things didn't--what's the word?"

"'Convince' is probably the word you want. But that type of criticism
is quite a thing of the past. Have you seen the illustrated American
edition?"

"I don't remember."

"Might I send you a copy? I think you ought to possess one."

"Thank you." His eye wandered. The bicycle had disappeared into
some trees, and thither, through a cloudless sky, the sun was also
descending.

"Is all quite plain?" said Mr. Pembroke. "Submit these ten stories to
the magazines, and make your own terms with the editors. Then--I have
your word for it--you will join forces with me; and the four stories in
my possession, together with yours, should make up a volume, which we
might well call 'Pan Pipes.'"

"Are you sure `Pan Pipes' haven't been used up already?"

Mr. Pembroke clenched his teeth. He had been bearing with this sort of
thing for nearly an hour. "If that is the case, we can select another.
A title is easy to come by. But that is the idea it must suggest. The
stories, as I have twice explained to you, all centre round a Nature
theme. Pan, being the god of--"

"I know that," said Stephen impatiently.

"--Being the god of--"

"All right. Let's get furrard. I've learnt that."

It was years since the schoolmaster had been interrupted, and he could
not stand it. "Very well," he said. "I bow to your superior knowledge of
the classics. Let us proceed."

"Oh yes the introduction. There must be one. It was the introduction
with all those wrong details that sold the other book."

"You overwhelm me. I never penned the memoir with that intention."

"If you won't do one, Mrs. Keynes must!"

"My sister leads a busy life. I could not ask her. I will do it myself
since you insist."

"And the binding?"

"The binding," said Mr. Pembroke coldly, "must really be left to the
discretion of the publisher. We cannot be concerned with such details.
Our task is purely literary." His attention wandered. He began to
fidget, and finally bent down and looked under the table. "What have we
here?" he asked.

Stephen looked also, and for a moment they smiled at each other over
the prostrate figure of a child, who was cuddling Mr. Pembroke's boots.
"She's after the blacking," he explained. "If we left her there, she'd
lick them brown."

"Indeed. Is that so very safe?"

"It never did me any harm. Come up! Your tongue's dirty."

"Can I--" She was understood to ask whether she could clean her tongue
on a lollie.

"No, no!" said Mr. Pembroke. "Lollipops don't clean little girls'
tongues."

"Yes, they do," he retorted. "But she won't get one." He lifted her on
his knee, and rasped her tongue with his handkerchief.

"Dear little thing," said the visitor perfunctorily. The child began
to squall, and kicked her father in the stomach. Stephen regarded her
quietly. "You tried to hurt me," he said. "Hurting doesn't count. Trying
to hurt counts. Go and clean your tongue yourself. Get off my knee."
Tears of another sort came into her eyes, but she obeyed him. "How's the
great Bertie?" he asked.

"Thank you. My nephew is perfectly well. How came you to hear of his
existence?"

"Through the Silts, of course. It isn't five miles to Cadover."

Mr. Pembroke raised his eyes mournfully. "I cannot conceive how the poor
Silts go on in that great house. Whatever she intended, it could not
have been that. The house, the farm, the money,--everything down to the
personal articles that belong to Mr. Failing, and should have reverted
to his family!"

"It's legal. Interstate succession."

"I do not dispute it. But it is a lesson to one to make a will. Mrs.
Keynes and myself were electrified."

"They'll do there. They offered me the agency, but--" He looked down
the cultivated slopes. His manners were growing rough, for he saw few
gentlemen now, and he was either incoherent or else alarmingly direct.
"However, if Lawrie Silt's a Cockney like his father, and if my next is
a boy and like me--" A shy beautiful look came into his eyes, and passed
unnoticed. "They'll do," he repeated. "They turned out Wilbraham and
built new cottages, and bridged the railway, and made other necessary
alterations." There was a moment's silence.

Mr. Pembroke took out his watch. "I wonder if I might have the trap? I
mustn't miss my train, must I? It is good of you to have granted me an
interview. It is all quite plain?"

"Yes."

"A case of half and half-division of profits."

"Half and half?" said the young farmer slowly. "What do you take me for?
Half and half, when I provide ten of the stories and you only four?"

"I--I--" stammered Mr. Pembroke.

"I consider you did me over the long story, and I'm damned if you do me
over the short ones!"

"Hush! if you please, hush!--if only for your little girl's sake."

He lifted a clerical palm.

"You did me," his voice drove, "and all the thirty-nine Articles won't
stop me saying so. That long story was meant to be mine. I got it
written. You've done me out of every penny it fetched. It's dedicated to
me--flat out--and you even crossed out the dedication and tidied me out
of the introduction. Listen to me, Pembroke. You've done people all your
life--I think without knowing it, but that won't comfort us. A wretched
devil at your school once wrote to me, and he'd been done. Sham food,
sham religion, sham straight talks--and when he broke down, you said it
was the world in miniature." He snatched at him roughly. "But I'll show
you the world." He twisted him round like a baby, and through the open
door they saw only the quiet valley, but in it a rivulet that would
in time bring its waters to the sea. "Look even at that--and up behind
where the Plain begins and you get on the solid chalk--think of us
riding some night when you're ordering your hot bottle--that's the
world, and there's no miniature world. There's one world, Pembroke, and
you can't tidy men out of it. They answer you back do you hear?--they
answer back if you do them. If you tell a man this way that four sheep
equal ten, he answers back you're a liar."

Mr. Pembroke was speechless, and--such is human nature--he chiefly
resented the allusion to the hot bottle; an unmanly luxury in which he
never indulged; contenting himself with nightsocks. "Enough--there is no
witness present--as you have doubtless observed." But there was. For a
little voice cried, "Oh, mummy, they're fighting--such fun--" and feet
went pattering up the stairs. "Enough. You talk of 'doing,' but what
about the money out of which you 'did' my sister? What about this
picture"--he pointed to a faded photograph of Stockholm--"which you
caused to be filched from the walls of my house? What about--enough!
Let us conclude this disheartening scene. You object to my terms. Name
yours. I shall accept them. It is futile to reason with one who is the
worse for drink."

Stephen was quiet at once. "Steady on!" he said gently. "Steady on
in that direction. Take one-third for your four stories and the
introduction, and I will keep two-thirds for myself." Then he went to
harness the horse, while Mr. Pembroke, watching his broad back,
desired to bury a knife in it. The desire passed, partly because it was
unclerical, partly because he had no knife, and partly because he soon
blurred over what had happened. To him all criticism was "rudeness":
he never heeded it, for he never needed it: he was never wrong. All his
life he had ordered little human beings about, and now he was equally
magisterial to big ones: Stephen was a fifth-form lout whom, owing to
some flaw in the regulations, he could not send up to the headmaster to
be caned.

This attitude makes for tranquillity. Before long he felt merely an
injured martyr. His brain cleared. He stood deep in thought before the
only other picture that the bare room boasted--the Demeter of Cnidus.
Outside the sun was sinking, and its last rays fell upon the immortal
features and the shattered knees. Sweet-peas offered their fragrance,
and with it there entered those more mysterious scents that come from
no one flower or clod of earth, but from the whole bosom of evening.
He tried not to be cynical. But in his heart he could not regret that
tragedy, already half-forgotten, conventionalized, indistinct. Of course
death is a terrible thing. Yet death is merciful when it weeds out a
failure. If we look deep enough, it is all for the best. He stared at
the picture and nodded.

Stephen, who had met his visitor at the station, had intended to drive
him back there. But after their spurt of temper he sent him with the
boy. He remained in the doorway, glad that he was going to make money,
glad that he had been angry; while the glow of the clear sky deepened,
and the silence was perfected, and the scents of the night grew
stronger. Old vagrancies awoke, and he resolved that, dearly as he
loved his house, he would not enter it again till dawn. "Goodnight!" he
called, and then the child came running, and he whispered, "Quick, then!
Bring me a rug." "Good-night," he repeated, and a pleasant voice called
through an upper window, "Why good-night?" He did not answer until the
child was wrapped up in his arms.

"It is time that she learnt to sleep out," he cried. "If you want me,
we're out on the hillside, where I used to be."

The voice protested, saying this and that.

"Stewart's in the house," said the man, "and it cannot matter, and I am
going anyway."

"Stephen, I wish you wouldn't. I wish you wouldn't take her. Promise
you won't say foolish things to her. Don't--I wish you'd come up for a
minute--"

The child, whose face was laid against his, felt the muscles in it
harden.

"Don't tell her foolish things about yourself--things that aren't any
longer true. Don't worry her with old dead dreadfulness. To please
me--don't."

"Just tonight I won't, then."

"Stevie, dear, please me more--don't take her with you."

At this he laughed impertinently. "I suppose I'm being kept in line,"
she called, and, though he could not see her, she stretched her arms
towards him. For a time he stood motionless, under her window, musing on
his happy tangible life. Then his breath quickened, and he wondered why
he was here, and why he should hold a warm child in his arms. "It's time
we were starting," he whispered, and showed the sky, whose orange was
already fading into green. "Wish everything goodnight."

"Good-night, dear mummy," she said sleepily. "Goodnight, dear house.
Good-night, you pictures--long picture--stone lady. I see you through
the window--your faces are pink."

The twilight descended. He rested his lips on her hair, and carried her,
without speaking, until he reached the open down. He had often slept
here himself, alone, and on his wedding-night, and he knew that the turf
was dry, and that if you laid your face to it you would smell the
thyme. For a moment the earth aroused her, and she began to chatter. "My
prayers--" she said anxiously. He gave her one hand, and she was
asleep before her fingers had nestled in its palm. Their touch made him
pensive, and again he marvelled why he, the accident, was here. He was
alive and had created life. By whose authority? Though he could not
phrase it, he believed that he guided the future of our race, and that,
century after century, his thoughts and his passions would triumph in
England. The dead who had evoked him, the unborn whom he would evoke he
governed the paths between them. By whose authority?

Out in the west lay Cadover and the fields of his earlier youth, and
over them descended the crescent moon. His eyes followed her decline,
and against her final radiance he saw, or thought he saw, the outline
of the Rings. He had always been grateful, as people who understood him
knew. But this evening his gratitude seemed a gift of small account. The
ear was deaf, and what thanks of his could reach it? The body was dust,
and in what ecstasy of his could it share? The spirit had fled, in agony
and loneliness, never to know that it bequeathed him salvation.

He filled his pipe, and then sat pressing the unlit tobacco with his
thumb. "What am I to do?" he thought. "Can he notice the things he gave
me? A parson would know. But what's a man like me to do, who works all
his life out of doors?" As he wondered, the silence of the night was
broken. The whistle of Mr. Pembroke's train came faintly, and a lurid
spot passed over the land--passed, and the silence returned. One thing
remained that a man of his sort might do. He bent down reverently and
saluted the child; to whom he had given the name of their mother.